Selected quad for the lemma: glory_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
glory_n lord_n name_n praise_v 7,539 5 9.1162 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A09339 A golden chaine: or The description of theologie containing the order of the causes of saluation and damnation, according to Gods word. A view whereof is to be seene in the table annexed. Hereunto is adioyned the order which M. Theodore Beza vsed in comforting afflicted consciences.; Selections Perkins, William, 1558-1602.; Bèze, Théodore de, 1519-1605. 1600 (1600) STC 19646; ESTC S114458 1,329,897 1,121

There are 47 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o jew_n and_o all_o nation_n under_o his_o dominion_n 2.1_o to_o signify_v that_o christ_n be_v bear_v at_o the_o very_a time_n foretell_v by_o jaacob_n when_o the_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n be_v take_v from_o juda_n and_o withal_o to_o show_v that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n and_o it_o be_v the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n that_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v bear_v either_o late_a or_o soon_o but_o so_o many_o age_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o this_o consideration_n of_o the_o very_a time_n itself_o serve_v great_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o thus_o may_v we_o reason_n with_o ourselves_o if_o god_n who_o in_o the_o beginning_n make_v a_o promise_n to_o our_o first_o parent_n concern_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n defer_v it_o almost_o 4000_o year_n and_o yet_o at_o length_n accomplish_v the_o same_o to_o the_o very_a full_a then_o no_o doubt_n god_n have_v promise_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o life_n everlasting_a will_v in_o his_o good_a time_n bring_v they_o to_o pass_v though_o as_o yet_o we_o see_v they_o not_o and_o thus_o by_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o all_o thing_n past_a shall_v we_o confirm_v our_o hope_n concern_v thing_n to_o come_v the_o place_n be_v not_o at_o jerusalem_n nor_o nazareth_n nor_o any_o other_o city_n but_o only_o a_o village_n of_o juda_n call_v bethleem_n that_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o micheas_n may_v be_v fulfil_v thou_o bethleem_n ephrata_n be_v little_a to_o be_v among_o the_o thousand_o of_o juda_n yet_o out_o of_o thou_o shall_v he_o come_v forth_o unto_o i_o that_o shall_v be_v the_o ruler_n in_o israel_n and_o here_o we_o may_v observe_v a_o memorable_a example_n of_o god_n providence_n which_o overrule_v the_o proceed_n of_o cruel_a tyrant_n to_o the_o accomplish_n of_o his_o own_o will_n they_o themselves_o for_o their_o part_n intend_v nothing_o less_o augustus_n not_o so_o much_o as_o dream_v of_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o messiah_n give_v commandment_n that_o every_o man_n shall_v go_v to_o his_o own_o city_n to_o be_v tax_v and_o hereupon_o joseph_n and_o marie_n take_v their_o journey_n from_o nazareth_n to_o bethleem_n which_o journey_n god_n himself_o appoint_v and_o dispose_v to_o this_o end_n that_o the_o messiah_n may_v be_v bear_v in_o the_o place_n which_o he_o preordain_v and_o foretell_v by_o his_o prophet_n the_o manner_n of_o christ_n birth_n be_v very_o base_a and_o poor_a for_o the_o place_n where_o he_o be_v bear_v be_v a_o stable_n and_o the_o cradle_n where_o he_o lie_v be_v a_o cratch_n and_o he_o willing_o take_v upon_o he_o this_o poverty_n for_o sundry_a cause_n i._o that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o say_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o shame_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o people_n 53.2_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v grow_v up_o as_o a_o root_n out_o of_o a_o dry_a ground_n and_o have_v neither_o form_n nor_o beauty_n ii_o that_o he_o may_v afterward_o from_o this_o base_a condition_n be_v exalt_v even_o in_o his_o manhood_n to_o that_o rich_a and_o glorious_a estate_n in_o which_o he_o shall_v manifest_v himself_o to_o be_v lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n iii_o he_o be_v bear_v in_o exceed_a poverty_n that_o he_o may_v shame_v the_o wise_a man_n of_o this_o world_n who_o exceed_o esteem_v of_o their_o riches_n power_n and_o glory_n persuade_v themselves_o that_o without_o such_o mean_v no_o good_a thing_n can_v be_v do_v and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o they_o can_v not_o so_o much_o as_o reconcile_v one_o man_n to_o god_n by_o all_o their_o might_n &_o wealth_n whereas_o christ_n himself_o have_v do_v the_o same_o both_o in_o poverty_n and_o weakness_n and_o can_v enlarge_v and_o preserve_v his_o kingdom_n without_o earthly_a help_n when_o he_o hang_v upon_o the_o cross_a the_o soldier_n strip_v he_o of_o his_o garment_n and_o be_v naked_a he_o bring_v that_o to_o pass_v which_o all_o the_o monarch_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o all_o their_o royalty_n can_v never_o have_v perform_v and_o whether_o christ_n lie_v in_o the_o manger_n between_o the_o ox_n and_o the_o ass_n or_o in_o the_o palace_n of_o the_o king_n it_o matter_n not_o in_o regard_n of_o our_o salvation_n iv._o he_o come_v in_o this_o manner_n that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o difference_n between_o his_o first_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o his_o last_o oom_n to_o judgement_n in_o the_o first_o he_o come_v only_o for_o this_o end_n not_o to_o make_v any_o outward_a alteration_n in_o the_o world_n but_o to_o change_v the_o conscience_n and_o to_o put_v in_o execution_n the_o work_n of_o our_o spiritual_a redemption_n and_o therefore_o he_o have_v reserve_v the_o overturning_a of_o all_o earthly_a estate_n with_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o own_o glory_n to_o the_o latter_a v._o last_o he_o be_v bear_v in_o a_o poor_a estate_n that_o he_o may_v procure_v true_a riches_n for_o we_o in_o heaven_n and_o withal_o sanctify_v unto_o we_o our_o poverty_n upon_o earth_n as_o paul_n say_v 8.9_o you_o know_v the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o he_o be_v rich_a for_o your_o sake_n become_v poor_a that_o you_o through_o his_o poverty_n may_v be_v make_v rich_a he_o be_v content_a to_o lie_v in_o the_o manger_n that_o we_o may_v rest_v in_o heaven_n this_o serve_v to_o teach_v we_o to_o be_v content_a to_o bear_v any_o mean_a condition_n that_o the_o lord_n shall_v send_v upon_o we_o for_o this_o be_v the_o very_a estate_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o and_o if_o for_o our_o cause_n he_o do_v not_o refuse_v the_o base_a condition_n that_o ever_o be_v why_o shall_v we_o murmur_v at_o the_o same_o for_o what_o be_v the_o best_a of_o we_o but_o miserable_a sinner_n and_o therefore_o utter_o unworthy_a either_o to_o go_v or_o lie_v upon_o the_o bare_a earth_n and_o though_o we_o fare_v and_o lie_v better_o than_o our_o lord_n himself_o yet_o such_o be_v our_o daintiness_n we_o be_v not_o please_v therewith_o whereas_o he_o for_o his_o part_n disdain_v not_o the_o manger_n of_o the_o ox_n and_o if_o the_o lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n come_v into_o the_o world_n find_v so_o little_a entertainment_n or_o favour_n we_o for_o our_o part_n be_v his_o member_n shall_v willing_o prepare_v ourselves_o to_o take_v as_o hard_a measure_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n 2._o the_o last_o point_n be_v the_o manifestation_n of_o christ_n birth_n that_o it_o may_v be_v know_v to_o the_o world_n where_o consider_v two_o circumstance_n the_o first_o to_o who_o namely_o to_o poor_a shepherd_n tend_v their_o flock_n by_o night_n and_o not_o to_o great_a or_o mighty_a man_n lover_n of_o this_o world_n nor_o to_o the_o priest_n at_o jerusalem_n contemner_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o that_o for_o two_o cause_n one_o because_o the_o shepherd_n be_v the_o fit_a person_n to_o publish_v the_o same_o at_o bethlehem_n the_o other_o it_o be_v god_n pleasure_n to_o manifest_v that_o in_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n which_o paul_n say_v 1.27_o not_o many_o wise_a man_n after_o the_o flesh_n not_o many_o mighty_a not_o many_o noble_a be_v call_v but_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a the_o second_o be_v by_o who_o by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n appear_v in_o great_a glory_n unto_o the_o shepherd_n for_o the_o priest_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o synagogue_n to_o who_o this_o office_n do_v belong_v hold_v their_o peace_n be_v blind_v in_o their_o manifold_a error_n &_o wicked_a way_n the_o duty_n to_o be_v learn_v of_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n be_v these_o first_o we_o be_v admonish_v hereby_o to_o magnify_v and_o praise_v the_o name_n of_o god_n say_v with_o mary_n my_o soul_n do_v magnify_v the_o lord_n and_o my_o spirit_n rejoice_v in_o god_n my_o saviour_n and_o with_o zacharie_n bless_a be_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n for_o he_o have_v visit_v and_o redeem_v his_o people_n and_o with_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n glory_n to_o god_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n for_o in_o this_o birth_n be_v make_v manifest_a the_o wisdom_n the_o truth_n the_o justice_n and_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o more_o than_o ever_o it_o be_v before_o yea_o as_o christ_n god_n and_o man_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o the_o first_o adam_n create_v according_a to_o god_n own_o image_n and_o as_o the_o spiritual_a life_n be_v better_a than_o the_o natural_a life_n and_o as_o the_o eternal_a and_o most_o holy_a marriage_n of_o christ_n the_o husband_n and_o his_o spouse_n the_o church_n arise_v as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o blood_n that_o trickle_v out_o of_o his_o side_n be_v more_o wonderful_a than_o the_o creation_n of_o eve_n of_o the_o rib_n of_o
shall_v return_v unto_o i_o with_o their_o whole_a heart_n in_o this_o knowledge_n of_o god_n must_v we_o glory_n jerem._n 9.24_o let_v he_o that_o glori_v glory_n in_o this_o that_o he_o understand_v and_o know_v i_o for_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n which_o show_v mercy_n judgement_n and_o righteousness_n in_o the_o earth_n ii_o a_o union_n with_o god_n whereby_o man_n be_v knit_v in_o heart_n with_o god_n josh._n 23._o 8._o stick_v fast_o unto_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n as_o you_o have_v do_v unto_o this_o day_n act._n 11.23_o he_o exhort_v all_o that_o with_o purpose_n of_o heart_n they_o will_v cleave_v to_o the_o lord_n man_n cleave_v unto_o god_n three_o manner_n of_o way_n in_o affiance_n in_o love_n and_o fear_v of_o god_n affiance_n be_v that_o whereby_o a_o man_n acknowledge_v the_o power_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o in_o he_o against_o all_o assault_n whatsoever_o do_v steadfast_o rest_v himself_o 2._o chro._n 20.20_o put_v your_o trust_n in_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n and_o you_o shall_v be_v assure_v believe_v his_o prophet_n and_o you_o shall_v prosper_v psal._n 27.1_o god_n be_v my_o light_n and_o my_o salvation_n who_o shall_v i_o fear_v god_n be_v the_o strength_n of_o my_o life_n of_o who_o shall_v i_o be_v afraid_a v_o 3._o though_o a_o host_n pitch_v against_o i_o my_o heart_n shall_v not_o be_v afraid_a though_o war_n be_v raise_v against_o i_o i_o will_v be_v secure_a hence_o rise_v patience_n and_o alacrity_n in_o present_a peril_n psal._n 39.19_o i_o shall_v have_v be_v dumb_a and_o not_o open_v my_o mouth_n because_o thou_o do_v it_o 2._o sam._n 16.10_o the_o king_n say_v what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v with_o you_o you_o son_n of_o zeruiah_n if_o he_o curse_v because_o the_o lord_n say_v curse_v david_n what_o be_v he_o that_o dare_v say_v why_o do_v thou_o so_o gen._n 45.5_o be_v not_o sad_a neither_o grieve_v with_o yourselves_o that_o you_o sell_v i_o hither_o for_o god_n do_v send_v i_o before_o you_o for_o your_o preservation_n v_o 8._o now_o then_o you_o send_v i_o not_o but_o god_n himself_o 2._o king_n 6.16_o fear_v not_o for_o they_o that_o be_v with_o we_o be_v more_o they_o they_o that_o be_v with_o they_o this_o affiance_n engender_v hope_n which_o be_v a_o patient_a expectation_n of_o god_n presence_n &_o assistance_n in_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o come_v psal._n 37.5_o commit_v thy_o way_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o trust_v in_o he_o and_o he_o shall_v bring_v it_o to_o pass_v vers_fw-la 7._o wait_v patient_o upon_o the_o lord_n and_o hope_v in_o he_o prou._n 16.3_o commit_v thy_o work_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o thy_o thought_n shall_v be_v direct_v the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v that_o whereby_o man_n acknowledge_v god_n goodness_n and_o favour_n towards_o he_o do_v again_o love_v he_o above_o all_o thing_n deut._n 6.5_o thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o strength_n the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a love_n of_o god_n be_v these_o i._o to_o hear_v willing_o his_o word_n ii_o to_o speak_v often_o to_o he_o iii_o to_o think_v often_o of_o he_o iv._o to_o do_v his_o will_n without_o irksomeness_n v._o to_o give_v body_n and_o all_o for_o his_o cause_n vi_o to_o desire_v his_o presence_n above_o all_o &_o to_o bewail_v his_o absence_n vii_o to_o embrace_v all_o such_o thing_n as_o appertain_v to_o he_o viii_o to_o love_v and_o hate_n that_o which_o he_o love_v and_o hate_v ix_o in_o all_o thing_n to_o seek_v to_o please_v he_o x._o to_o draw_v other_o unto_o the_o love_n of_o he_o xi_o to_o esteem_v high_o of_o such_o gift_n and_o grace_n as_o he_o bestow_v xii_o to_o stay_v ourselves_o upon_o his_o counsel_n reveal_v in_o his_o word_n last_o to_o call_v upon_o his_o name_n with_o affiance_n the_o fear_n of_o god_n be_v that_o whereby_o man_n acknowledge_v god_n both_o mercy_n and_o justice_n do_v as_o it_o be_v a_o capital_a crime_n fear_v to_o displease_v god_n psal._n 103._o 3._o with_o thou_o be_v mercy_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v fear_v habak_v 3.16_o when_o i_o hear_v it_o my_o belly_n tremble_v my_o lip_n shake_v at_o the_o voice_n rottenness_n enter_v into_o my_o bone_n &_o i_o tremble_v in_o myself_o that_o i_o may_v rest_v in_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_n when_o he_o come_v up_o against_o the_o people_n to_o destroy_v they_o psal._n 4.4_o tremble_v and_o sin_v not_o hence_o arise_v the_o godly_a man_n desire_n to_o approve_v himself_o in_o all_o thing_n to_o his_o god_n gen._n 5.22_o and_o henoch_n walk_v with_o god_n after_o that_o etc._n etc._n gen._n 17._o 1._o god_n say_v to_o he_o i_o be_o al-sufficient_a walk_v before_o i_o and_o be_v thou_o perfect_a out_o of_o these_o three_o former_a virtue_n proceed_v humility_n whereby_o a_o man_n acknowledge_v god_n free_a bounty_n and_o prostrate_v himself_o before_o he_o do_v ascribe_v unto_o he_o all_o praise_n and_o glory_n 1._o cor._n 1.31_o let_v he_o that_o glori_v glory_n in_o the_o lord_n 1._o pet._n 5.5_o deck_n yourselves_o inward_o with_o lowliness_n of_o mind_n for_o god_n resist_v the_o proud_a and_o give_v grace_n to_o the_o humble_a v_o 6._o humble_a yourselves_o therefore_o under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v exalt_v you_o in_o due_a time_n 1._o chro._n 29._o 10,11_o and_o david_n say_v bless_a be_v thou_o o_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n our_o father_n for_o ever_o and_o thou_o o_o lord_n be_v greatness_n and_o power_n and_o glory_n and_o victory_n and_o praise_v for_o all_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n be_v thou_o etc._n etc._n and_o v_o 14._o but_o who_o be_o i_o and_o what_o be_v my_o people_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o offer_v willing_o on_o this_o sort_n for_o all_o thing_n come_v of_o thou_o and_o of_o thy_o own_o hand_n we_o have_v give_v thou_o etc._n etc._n the_o negative_a part_n account_v not_o that_o as_o god_n which_o be_v by_o nature_n no_o god_n in_o this_o place_n be_v these_o sin_n forbid_v i._o ignorance_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o his_o will_n which_o be_v not_o only_o not_o to_o know_v but_o also_o to_o doubt_v of_o such_o thing_n as_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o his_o word_n jerem._n 4._o 22._o my_o people_n be_v foolish_a they_o have_v not_o know_v i_o they_o be_v foolish_a child_n and_o have_v none_o understanding_n they_o be_v wise_a to_o do_v evil_a but_o to_o do_v well_o they_o have_v no_o knowledge_n jerem._n 9.3_o they_o proceed_v from_o evil_a to_o worse_o and_o have_v not_o know_v i_o say_v the_o lord_n ii_o atheism_n when_o the_o heart_n deny_v either_o god_n or_o his_o attribute_n as_o his_o justice_n wisdom_n providence_n presence_n psal._n 14._o 1._o the_o fool_n have_v say_v in_o his_o heart_n there_o be_v no_o god_n eph._n 2._o 12._o you_o have_v no_o hope_n and_o be_v without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n malach._n 1.2_o i_o love_v you_o say_v the_o lord_n yet_o you_o say_v wherein_o have_v we_o speak_v against_o thou_o v_o 14._o you_o have_v say_v it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o serve_v god_n &_o what_o profit_n be_v it_o that_o we_o have_v keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o that_o we_o walk_v humble_o before_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n iii_o error_n concern_v god_n the_o person_n of_o the_o deity_n or_o the_o attribut_n here_o be_v it_o to_o be_v reprove_v hellenisme_n which_o be_v the_o acknowledge_v &_o adore_v of_o a_o multiplicity_n of_o god_n august_n in_o his_o 6._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n chap._n 7._o again_o judaism_n be_v here_o condemn_v which_o worship_v one_o god_n without_o christ._n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o manichee_n and_o marcian_n who_o deny_v god_n the_o father_n of_o sabellius_n deny_v the_o distinction_n of_o three_o person_n and_o arrius_n who_o say_v that_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o very_a god_n iv._o to_o withdraw_v and_o remove_v the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n from_o the_o lord_n and_o set_v they_o upon_o other_o thing_n isaiah_n 29.13_o the_o lord_n say_v this_o people_n draw_v near_o i_o with_o their_o mouth_n and_o honour_v i_o with_o their_o lip_n but_o their_o heart_n be_v far_o from_o i_o jerem._n 12.2_o thou_o be_v near_o in_o their_o mouth_n and_o far_o from_o their_o reins_n the_o heart_n be_v many_o way_n withdraw_v from_o god_n i._o by_o distrust_n in_o god_n heb._n 10.38_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n but_o if_o any_o withdraw_v himself_o my_o soul_n shall_v have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o he_o from_o this_o diffidence_n arise_v i._o impatience_n in_o suffer_a affliction_n jerem._n 20._o 14._o curse_a be_v the_o day_n wherein_o i_o be_v bear_v and_o let_v not_o the_o
unto_o i_o with_o all_o your_o heart_n with_o fast_v and_o prayer_n vers_fw-la 13._o rend_a your_o heart_n and_o not_o your_o garment_n and_o turn_v unto_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n for_o he_o be_v gracious_a and_o merciful_a long_o ●uffering_v and_o of_o great_a kindness_n that_o he_o may_v repent_v he_o of_o this_o evil_n vers_fw-la 15._o blow_v the_o trumpet_n in_o zion_n sanctify_v a_o fast_n call_v a_o solemn_a assembly_n vers_fw-la 16._o gather_v the_o people_n sanctify_v the_o congregation_n gather_v the_o elder_n assemble_v the_o child_n and_o those_o that_o suck_v the_o breast_n let_v the_o bridegroom_n go_v forth_o of_o his_o chamber_n and_o the_o bride_n out_o of_o her_o bride_n chamber_n vers_fw-la 17._o let_v the_o priest_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o lord_n weep_v between_o the_o porch_n and_o the_o altar_n and_o let_v they_o say_v spare_v thy_o people_n o_o god_n etc._n etc._n a_o fast_n be_v sometime_o private_a sometime_o public_a 2._o chron._n 20.3_o jehosaphat_n fear_v and_o set_v himself_o to_o seek_v the_o lord_n and_o proclaim_v a_o fast_a throughout_o all_o judah_n hest._n 4._o 16._o fast_o you_o for_o i_o and_o neither_o eat_v nor_o drink_v for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o day_n and_o night_n i_o also_o and_o my_o maid_n will_v fast_o a_o fast_o be_v either_o for_o one_o day_n alone_o or_o for_o many_o day_n together_o each_o of_o they_o be_v as_o occasion_n serve_v a_o abstinence_n from_o meat_n at_o dinner_n alone_o or_o supper_n alone_o or_o both_o dinner_n and_o supper_n judg._n 20.23_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n have_v go_v up_o and_o weep_v before_o the_o lord_n unto_o the_o evening_n etc._n etc._n dan._n 10.3_o i_o daniel_n be_v in_o heaviness_n for_o three_o week_n of_o day_n i_o eat_v no_o pleasant_a bread_n neither_o come_v flesh_n nor_o wine_n in_o my_o mouth_n etc._n etc._n iu_o league_n of_o amity_n among_o such_o as_o fear_v god_n according_a to_o his_o worde●_n be_v lawful_a as_o contract_v in_o matrimony_n league_n in_o war_n especial_o if_o the_o war_n be_v lawful_a and_o without_o confidence_n in_o the_o power_n of_o man_n 2._o chro._n 19.2_o mal._n chap._n 2._o vers_fw-la 11._o to_o these_o may_v be_v add_v that_o covenant_n which_o the_o magistrate_n and_o people_n make_v among_o themselves_o and_o with_o god_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o christian_a religion_n 2._o chr._n 15.12_o and_o they_o make_v a_o covenant_n to_o seek_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o their_o father_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n &_o with_o all_o their_o soul_n etc._n etc._n v._n 14._o and_o they_o swear_v unto_o the_o lord_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n and_o with_o shout_v and_o with_o trumpet_n and_o with_o cornets_z chap._n 22._o of_o the_o three_o commandment_n the_o three_o commandment_n concern_v the_o glorify_v of_o god_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o our_o life_n without_o the_o solemn_a service_n of_o god_n thou_o shall_v not_o take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n in_o vain_a for_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o hold_v he_o guiltless_a that_o take_v his_o name_n in_o vain_a the_o resolution_n name_v this_o word_n proper_o signify_v god_n title_n here_o figurative_o it_o be_v use_v for_o any_o thing_n whereby_o god_n may_v be_v know_v as_o man_n be_v by_o their_o name_n so_o it_o be_v use_v for_o his_o word_n work_n judgement_n act._n 9.15_o he_o be_v a_o elect_a vessel_n to_o convey_v my_o name_n among_o the_o gentile_n psal._n 8.1_o o_o lord_n our_o god_n how_o great_a be_v thy_o name_n through_o all_o the_o world_n which_o set_v thy_o glory_n above_o the_o heaven_n take_v that_o be_v usurp_v this_o word_n be_v translate_v from_o precious_a thing_n which_o may_v not_o be_v touch_v without_o licence_n and_o in_o truth_n man_n which_o be_v no_o better_a than_o worm_n creep_v on_o the_o earth_n be_v utter_o unworthy_a to_o take_v or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v touch_v the_o sacred_a name_n of_o god_n with_o mind_n or_o mouth_n nevertheless_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a kindness_n permit_v we_o so_o to_o do_v in_o vain_a namely_o for_o no●cause_n any_o matter_n and_o upon_o each_o light_n and_o fond_a occasion_n for_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o commandment_n be_v take_v from_o the_o penalty_n annex_v he_o that_o abuse_v god_n name_n be_v guilty_a of_o sin_n before_o god_n judgement_n seat_n and_o therefore_o be_v most_o miserable_a psal._n 32.1,2_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n who_o iniquity_n be_v forgive_v and_o who_o sin_n be_v cover_v bless_a be_v the_o man_n to_o who_o god_n impute_v not_o s●nne_n guiltless_a that_o be_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v unpunished_a the_o negative_a part_n thou_o shall_v not_o bereave_v god_n of_o that_o honour_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o here_o be_v include_v each_o several_a abuse_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v use_v in_o the_o course_n of_o our_o life_n out_o of_o the_o solemn_a service_n of_o god_n i._o perjury_n when_o a_o man_n perform_v not_o that_o which_o he_o on_o his_o own_o accord_n swear_v to_o do_v math._n 5._o 33._o thou_o shall_v not_o forswear_v thyself_o but_o perform_v thy_o oath_n to_o the_o lord_n perjury_n contain_v in_o it_o four_o capital_a sin_n 1._o lie_v 2._o false_a invocation_n on_o god_n name_n because_o a_o forswearer_n call_v on_o god_n to_o confirm_v a_o lie_n 3._o contempt_n of_o god_n threaten_n that_o he_o will_v most_o grievous_o punish_v perjury_n 4._o a_o lie_n in_o his_o covenant_n with_o god_n for_o the_o forswearer_n bind_v himself_o to_o god_n and_o lie_v unto_o god_n ii_o to_o swear_v that_o which_o be_v false_a this_o be_v to_o make_v god_n and_o the_o devil_n both_o alike_o joh._n 8.44_o you_o be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n etc._n etc._n when_o he_o speak_v a_o lie_n he_o speak_v of_o himself_o because_o he_o be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o father_n of_o lie_n zach._n 5.4_o it_o shall_v enter_v into_o the_o house_n of_o he_o that_o swear_v false_o by_o my_o name_n iii_o to_o swear_v in_o common_a talk_n matth._n 5.37_o let_v your_o communication_n be_v yea_o yea_o and_o nay_o nay_o for_o whatsoever_o be_v more_o than_o these_o come_v of_o evil_a iv._o to_o swear_v by_o that_o which_o be_v no_o god_n matth._n 5._o 34_o 35._o but_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o swear_v not_o at_o all_o neither_o by_o heaven_n for_o it_o be_v god_n throne_n neither_o by_o the_o earth_n for_o it_o be_v his_o footstool_n neither_o by_o jerusalem_n for_o it_o be_v the_o city_n of_o the_o great_a king_n 1._o king_n 19.2_o jesabel_n send_v a_o messenger_n to_o elias_n say_v thus_o do_v the_o god_n and_o so_o let_v they_o deal_v with_o i_o if_o i_o by_o to_o morrow_n this_o time_n make_v not_o thy_o life_n as_o be_v the_o life_n of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o jere._n 12.16_o they_o teach_v my_o people_n to_o swear_v by_o baal_n jere._n 5.7_o thy_o son_n forsake_v i_o and_o swear_v by_o they_o which_o be_v no_o god_n this_o place_n condemn_v that_o usual_a swear_n by_o the_o mass_n faith_n and_o such_o like_a matth._n 23.22_o he_o that_o swear_v by_o heaven_n swear_v by_o god_n throne_n and_o he_o that_o sit_v thereon_o but_o for_o a_o man_n to_o swear_v by_o christ_n death_n wound_n blood_n &_o other_o part_n of_o he_o be_v most_o horrible_a &_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o crucify_v christ_n again_o with_o the_o jew_n or_o account_n christ_n member_n as_o god_n himself_o v._o blasphemy_n which_o be_v a_o reproach_n against_o god_n and_o the_o least_o speech_n that_o savour_v of_o contempt_n to_o his_o majesty_n levit._n 24.15_o 16._o whosoever_o curse_v his_o god_n shall_v bear_v his_o sin_n and_o he_o that_o blaspheme_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n 2._o king_n 19.10_o so_o shall_v you_o say_v to_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n let_v not_o thy_o god_n deceive_v thou_o in_o who_o thou_o trust_v say_v jerusalem_n shall_v not_o be_v give_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o king_n of_o ashur_n aiax_n in_o the_o tragedy_n have_v this_o blasphemous_a speech_n that_o every_o coward_n may_v overcome_v if_o he_o have_v god_n on_o his_o side_n as_o for_o he_o he_o can_v get_v the_o victory_n without_o god_n assistance_n that_o sly_a taunt_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v likewise_o blasphemous_a wherein_o he_o call_v himself_o the_o servant_n of_o all_o god_n servant_n when_o as_o in_o truth_n he_o make_v himself_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o god_n subject_n to_o his_o vain_a fantasy_n vi_o curse_v our_o enemy_n as_o go_v with_o a_o vengeance_n or_o the_o devil_n go_v with_o thou_o or_o ourselves_o as_o i_o will_v i_o may_v never_o stir_v or_o as_o god_n shall_v judge_v my_o soul_n etc._n etc._n to_o this_o place_n we_o may_v refer_v the_o execration_n of_o job_n 3_o jer._n 15._o vii_o to_o use_v the_o name_n of_o god_n careless_o in_o our_o
begin_v and_o finish_v the_o whole_a work_n in_o six_o distinct_a day_n 1._o in_o the_o first_o day_n he_o make_v the_o matter_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o the_o light_n in_o the_o second_o the_o heaven_n in_o the_o three_o day_n he_o bring_v the_o sea_n into_o his_o compass_n and_o make_v the_o dry_a land_n appear_v and_o cause_v it_o to_o bring_v forth_o herb_n plant_n and_o tree_n in_o the_o four_o he_o make_v the_o sun_n the_o moon_n and_o the_o star_n in_o heaven_n in_o the_o five_o day_n he_o make_v the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n the_o fowl_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o every_o creep_a thing_n in_o the_o six_o day_n he_o make_v the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n and_o all_o cattle_n and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o six_o day_n he_o make_v man_n thus_o in_o six_o distinct_a space_n of_o time_n the_o lord_n do_v make_v all_o thing_n and_o that_o especial_o for_o three_o cause_n i._o to_o teach_v man_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v a_o distinct_a and_o serious_a consideration_n of_o every_o creature_n for_o if_o god_n make_v the_o world_n in_o a_o moment_n some_o may_v have_v say_v this_o work_n be_v so_o mystical_a that_o no_o man_n can_v speak_v of_o it_o but_o for_o the_o prevent_n of_o this_o cavil_n it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n to_o make_v the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n therein_o in_o six_o day_n and_o the_o seven_o day_n he_o command_v it_o to_o be_v sanctify_v by_o man_n that_o they_o may_v distinct_o and_o serious_o mediate_v upon_o every_o day_n work_n of_o the_o creation_n ii_o god_n make_v the_o world_n and_o every_o thing_n therein_o in_o six_o distinct_a day_n to_o teach_v we_o what_o wonderful_a power_n and_o liberty_n he_o have_v over_o all_o his_o creature_n for_o he_o make_v the_o light_n when_o there_o be_v neither_o sun_n nor_o moon_n nor_o star_n to_o show_v that_o in_o give_v light_n to_o the_o world_n he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o the_o sun_n to_o any_o creature_n or_o to_o any_o mean_n for_o the_o light_n be_v make_v the_o first_o day_n but_o the_o sun_n the_o moon_n and_o the_o star_n be_v not_o create_v before_o the_o four_o day_n again_o tree_n and_o plant_n be_v create_v the_o three_o day_n but_o yet_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o the_o star_n and_o rain_n which_o nourish_v and_o make_v herb_n tree_n and_o plant_n to_o grow_v be_v not_o create_v till_o after_o the_o three_o day_n which_o show_v plain_o that_o god_n can_v make_v tree_n plant_n and_o herb_n to_o grow_v without_o the_o mean_n of_o rain_n and_o without_o the_o virtue_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o sun_n the_o moon_n and_o the_o star_n iii_o he_o make_v the_o world_n in_o six_o distinct_a day_n and_o frame_v all_o thing_n in_o this_o order_n to_o teach_v we_o his_o wonderful_a providence_n over_o all_o his_o creature_n for_o before_o man_n be_v create_v he_o provide_v for_o he_o a_o dwell_a place_n and_o all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o his_o perpetual_a preservation_n and_o perfect_a happiness_n and_o felicity_n so_o also_o he_o create_v beast_n and_o cattle_n but_o not_o before_o he_o have_v make_v herb_n plant_n and_o grass_n and_o all_o mean_n whereby_o they_o be_v preserve_v and_o if_o god_n have_v this_o care_n over_o man_n when_o as_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o much_o more_o will_v god_n have_v care_n over_o he_o now_o when_o he_o be_v and_o have_v a_o be_v in_o nature_n and_o thus_o much_o concern_v the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n touch_v the_o creation_n the_o duty_n follow_v and_o first_o by_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n we_o may_v discern_v the_o true_a jehovah_n from_o all_o false_a god_n and_o idol_n in_o the_o world_n this_o esaiah_n make_v plain_a bring_v in_o the_o lord_n reason_v thus_o i_o be_o god_n and_o there_o be_v none_o other_o god_n beside_o i_o how_o be_v that_o prove_v thus_o i_o form_v the_o light_n and_o create_v darkness_n i_o make_v peace_n and_o create_v evil_a i_o the_o lord_n do_v all_o these_o thing_n 45.6,7_o if_o a_o man_n ask_v thou_o how_o thou_o know_v the_o true_a god_n from_o all_o false_a god_n thou_o must_v answer_v by_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n for_o he_o alone_o be_v the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o all_o thing_n in_o they_o this_o property_n can_v not_o agree_v to_o any_o creature_n to_o any_o man_n saint_n or_o angel_n nay_o not_o to_o all_o man_n and_o all_o angel_n they_o can_v not_o give_v be_v to_o a_o creature_n which_o before_o be_v nothing_o second_o whereas_o god_n the_o father_n be_v creator_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o have_v give_v unto_o man_n reason_n understanding_n and_o ability_n more_o than_o to_o other_o creature_n we_o be_v teach_v to_o consider_v and_o meditate_v of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n creation_n this_o the_o wise_a man_n teach_v we_o say_v consider_v the_o work_n of_o god_n 7.15_o and_o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o special_a duty_n of_o every_o man_n which_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o god_n church_n as_o he_o acknowledge_v god_n to_o be_v the_o creator_n so_o to_o look_v upon_o his_o workmanship_n and_o view_n and_o consider_v all_o creature_n a_o skilful_a workman_n can_v have_v no_o great_a disgrace_n then_o when_o he_o have_v do_v some_o famous_a thing_n to_o have_v his_o friend_n pass_v by_o his_o work_n and_o not_o so_o much_o as_o look_v upon_o it_o if_o it_o be_v demand_v for_o what_o end_n must_v we_o look_v upon_o the_o work_n of_o god_n creation_n i_o answer_v that_o in_o it_o we_o may_v see_v and_o discern_v god_n power_n wisdom_n love_n mercy_n and_o providence_n and_o all_o his_o attribute_n and_o in_o all_o thing_n his_o glory_n this_o be_v a_o most_o necessary_a duty_n to_o be_v learn_v of_o every_o man_n we_o think_v nothing_o too_o much_o or_o too_o good_a to_o bestow_v on_o vain_a show_n and_o play_n idle_a sport_n and_o pastime_n which_o be_v the_o vanity_n of_o man_n and_o we_o do_v most_o willing_o behold_v they_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n utter_o neglect_v and_o contemn_v the_o glorious_a work_n of_o god_n creation_n well_o the_o lord_n god_n have_v appoint_v his_o sabbath_n to_o be_v sanctify_v not_o only_o by_o the_o public_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o by_o private_a prayer_n but_o also_o by_o a_o especial_a consideration_n and_o meditation_n of_o god_n creature_n and_o therefore_o the_o duty_n of_o every_o man_n be_v this_o distinct_o and_o serious_o to_o view_v and_o consider_v the_o creature_n of_o god_n and_o thereby_o take_v occasion_n to_o glorify_v his_o name_n by_o ascribe_v unto_o he_o the_o wisdom_n glory_n power_n and_o omnipotency_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o and_o appear_v in_o the_o same_o three_o we_o must_v give_v god_n glory_n in_o all_o his_o creature_n because_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o they_o all_o so_o in_o the_o revelation_n the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n fall_v down_o before_o he_o and_o say_v 4.11_o thou_o be_v worthy_a o_o lord_n to_o receive_v glory_n and_o honour_n and_o power_n give_v this_o reason_n for_o thou_o have_v create_v all_o thing_n and_o for_o thy_o will_n sake_n they_o be_v and_o have_v be_v create_v read_v the_o psalm_n 147._o and_o 148._o both_o which_o tend_v to_o this_o effect_n that_o god_n must_v be_v praise_v because_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o who_o all_o glory_n be_v due_a we_o know_v that_o when_o man_n behold_v any_o curious_a work_n of_o a_o cunning_a and_o skilful_a craftesman_n straightway_o they_o will_v leave_v the_o work_n and_o inquire_v after_o he_o that_o make_v it_o that_o they_o may_v praise_v his_o skill_n the_o same_o be_v our_o duty_n in_o this_o case_n when_o we_o come_v abroad_o and_o behold_v every_o where_o in_o all_o the_o creature_n the_o admirable_a and_o unspeakable_a wisdom_n goodness_n and_o power_n of_o god_n than_o we_o must_v make_v haste_n from_o the_o creature_n and_o go_v forward_o to_o the_o creator_n to_o praise_v and_o glorify_v he_o and_o herein_o must_v we_o show_v ourselves_o to_o differ_v from_o bruit_n beast_n in_o that_o by_o the_o use_n and_o view_v of_o god_n creature_n we_o do_v return_v due_a glory_n praise_n and_o honour_n unto_o the_o creator_n our_o four_o duty_n be_v set_v down_o by_o the_o prophet_n amos_n who_o move_v the_o people_n to_o meet_v god_n by_o repentance_n add_v a_o reason_n take_v from_o the_o creation_n he_o that_o fourm_v the_o mountain_n and_o creat_v the_o wind_n which_o declare_v unto_o man_n what_o be_v his_o thought_n which_o make_v the_o morning_n darkness_n etc._n etc._n the_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n be_v his_o name_n 4.13_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v this_o god_n be_v a_o terrible_a judge_n and_o we_o be_v as_o traitor_n &_o rebel_n against_o he_o therefore_o the_o best_a way_n that_o we_o
and_o business_n among_o man_n to_o which_o they_o be_v by_o god_n appoint_v and_o the_o body_n of_o man_n which_o they_o assume_v be_v no_o part_n of_o their_o nature_n unite_v to_o they_o as_o our_o body_n be_v to_o we_o but_o rather_o they_o be_v as_o garment_n be_v to_o we_o which_o they_o may_v put_v off_o and_o on_o at_o their_o pleasure_n if_o any_o shall_v ask_v whence_o they_o have_v these_o body_n the_o answer_n be_v that_o either_o they_o be_v create_v of_o nothing_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n or_o frame_v of_o some_o other_o matter_n subsist_v before_o if_o again_o it_o be_v ask_v what_o become_v of_o these_o body_n when_o they_o lay_v they_o down_o because_o they_o use_v they_o but_o for_o a_o time_n the_o answer_n may_v be_v that_o if_o they_o be_v make_v of_o nothing_o they_o be_v again_o resolve_v into_o nothing_o if_o make_v of_o other_o creature_n that_o then_o they_o be_v resolve_v into_o the_o same_o body_n of_o which_o they_o be_v first_o make_v though_o indeed_o we_o can_v define_v nothing_o certain_o in_o this_o point_n iii_o angel_n be_v reasonable_a creature_n of_o excellent_a knowledge_n and_o understanding_n far_o surpass_v all_o man_n save_o christ._n their_o knowledge_n be_v threefold_a natural_a reveal_v experimental_a natural_a which_o they_o receive_v from_o god_n in_o the_o creation_n reveal_v which_o god_n make_v manifest_a to_o they_o in_o process_n of_o time_n whereas_o before_o they_o know_v it_o not_o thus_o god_n reveal_v to_o gabriel_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o 70._o week_n dan._n 8_o and_o 9_o and_o in_o the_o apocalypse_n many_o thing_n be_v reveal_v to_o the_o angel_n that_o they_o may_v reveal_v they_o to_o us._n experimental_a knowledge_n be_v that_o which_o they_o get_v by_o observe_v the_o deal_n of_o god_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o special_o in_o the_o church_n and_o thus_o paul_n say_v 10._o that_o to_o principality_n and_o power_n in_o heavenly_a place_n be_v know_v the_o manifold_a wisdom_n of_o god_n by_o the_o church_n iv._n and_o as_o the_o knowledge_n so_o also_o the_o power_n of_o the_o good_a angel_n be_v exceed_o great_a 103.20_o they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v more_o than_o all_o man_n can_v therefore_o paul_n call_v they_o mighty_a angel_n 2._o thess._n 1.7_o yea_o their_o power_n be_v far_o superior_a to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o wicked_a angel_n 3._o who_o since_o the_o fall_n be_v under_o they_o and_o can_v not_o prevail_v against_o they_o v._o the_o place_n of_o the_o abode_n of_o angel_n be_v the_o high_a heaven_n unless_o they_o be_v send_v thence_o by_o the_o lord_n to_o do_v some_o thing_n appoint_v by_o he_o this_o our_o saviour_n christ_n teach_v when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o angel_n of_o little_a one_o do_v already_o behold_v the_o face_n of_o their_o father_n in_o heaven_n and_o the_o wicked_a angel_n before_o their_o fall_n be_v place_v in_o heaven_n because_o they_o be_v cast_v thence_o vi_o that_o there_o be_v certain_a distinction_n and_o diversity_n of_o angel_n it_o be_v very_o likely_a because_o they_o be_v call_v throne_n and_o principality_n and_o power_n cherubin_n and_o seraphim_n 1.16_o but_o what_o be_v the_o distinct_a degree_n and_o order_n of_o angel_n and_o whether_o they_o be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v by_o their_o nature_n gift_n or_o office_n no_o man_n by_o scripture_n can_v determine_v vii_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n to_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v set_v they_o apart_o be_v threefold_a and_o it_o respect_v either_o god_n himself_o or_o his_o church_n or_o his_o enemy_n the_o ministry_n which_o they_o perform_v to_o god_n it_o first_o of_o all_o to_o adore_v praise_n and_o glorify_v he_o continual_o thus_o the_o cherubim_n in_o esaies_n vision_n cry_v one_o to_o another_o 6.2_o holy_a holy_a holy_a be_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n the_o world_n be_v full_a of_o his_o glory_n and_o when_o they_o be_v to_o publish_v the_o birth_n of_o the_o messiah_n they_o begin_v on_o this_o manner_n glory_n to_o god_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n peace_n on_o earth_n 1.14_o and_o john_n in_o his_o vision_n hear_v the_o angel_n about_o the_o throne_n cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n worthy_a be_v the_o lamb_n etc._n etc._n to_o receive_v power_n riches_n and_o strength_n wisdom_n and_o honour_n and_o glory_n and_o praise_n 5.11_o and_o indeed_o the_o high_a end_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n be_v the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o second_o be_v to_o stand_v in_o god_n presence_n evermore_o ready_a to_o do_v his_o commandment_n as_o david_n say_v praise_v the_o lord_n you_o his_o angel_n that_o excel_v in_o strength_n that_o do_v his_o commandment_n in_o obey_v the_o voice_n of_o his_o word_n and_o here_o be_v a_o good_a lesson_n for_o us._n ●0_n we_o pray_v daily_o that_o we_o may_v do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n as_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n do_v it_o let_v we_o therefore_o be_v follower_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n in_o praise_v god_n and_o in_o do_v his_o commandment_n as_o they_o do_v 1.14_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n concern_v the_o church_n stand_v in_o this_o that_o they_o be_v minister_a spirit_n for_o the_o good_a of_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v heir_n of_o salvation_n the_o good_a be_v threefold_a in_o this_o life_n in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o life_n and_o in_o the_o last_o judgement_n again_o the_o good_a which_o they_o procure_v to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o this_o life_n be_v either_o in_o respect_n of_o body_n or_o soul_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o body_n in_o that_o they_o do_v most_o careful_o perform_v all_o manner_n of_o duty_n which_o do_v necessary_o tend_v to_o preserve_v the_o temporal_a life_n of_o god_n child_n even_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o day_n to_o the_o end_n david_n say_v 16.7_o that_o they_o pitch_v their_o tent_n about_o they_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n when_o agar_n be_v cast_v forth_o of_o abraham_n family_n and_o wander_v in_o the_o wilderness_n a_o angel_n come_v unto_o she_o and_o give_v her_o counsel_n to_o return_v to_o her_o mistress_n and_o humble_a herself_o when_o elias_n flee_v from_o jesabel_n he_o be_v both_o comfort_v direct_v and_o feed_v by_o a_o angel_n 1._o and_o a_o angel_n bid_v the_o same_o elia●_n be_v of_o good_a courage_n and_o without_o fear_n to_o go_v to_o king_n achazias_n &_o reprove_v he_o 19_o angel_n bring_v lot_n and_o his_o family_n out_o of_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n before_o they_o burn_v the_o city_n with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n when_o jacob_n fear_v his_o brother_n esau_n he_o see_v angel_n come_v unto_o he_o and_o he_o plain_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o be_v send_v to_o be_v his_o protector_n &_o his_o guide_n in_o his_o journey_n ●_o abraham_n be_v persuade_v of_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n angel_n in_o all_o his_o way_n say_v to_o his_o servant_n 24.7_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o heaven_n who_o take_v i_o from_o my_o father_n house_n etc._n etc._n will_v send_v his_o angel_n before_o thou_o the_o wise_a man_n that_o come_v to_o see_v christ_n be_v admonish_v by_o angel_n to_o return_v another_o way_n 6._o and_o joseph_n by_o the_o direction_n of_o a_o angel_n flee_v into_o egypt_n that_o he_o may_v preserve_v christ_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o cruel_a tyrant_n the_o tent_n of_o the_o israelite_n be_v guard_v by_o angel_n the_o three_o child_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o fiery_a furnace_n and_o daniel_n out_o of_o the_o lion_n den_n by_o angel_n when_o christ_n be_v in_o heaviness_n they_o minister_v unto_o he_o and_o comfort_v he_o 12._o and_o they_o bring_v peter_n out_o of_o prison_n and_o set_v he_o at_o liberty_n again_o the_o angel_n procure_v good_a unto_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o godly_a in_o that_o they_o be_v maintainer_n and_o furtherer_n of_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o of_o all_o good_a mean_n whereby_o we_o attain_v to_o salvation_n the_o law_n be_v deliver_v in_o mount_n sina_n by_o angel_n 7._o and_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o revelation_n of_o john_n they_o expound_v to_o daniel_n the_o seventy_o week_n they_o instruct_v the_o apostle_n touch_v the_o return_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o last_o judgement_n 5.2_o a_o angel_n forbid_v john_n to_o worship_v he_o 2d_o but_o to_o worship_n god_n the_o creator_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n they_o fetch_v the_o apostle_n out_o of_o prison_n 5.20_o and_o bid_v they_o teach_v in_o the_o temple_n a_o angel_n bring_v philip_n to_o the_o eunuch_n that_o he_o may_v expound_v the_o scripture_n to_o he_o last_o they_o reveal_v the_o mystery_n and_o the_o will_n of_o god_n as_o to_o abraham_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o kill_v his_o son_n isaac_n 1._o to_o mary_n and_o elizabeth_n the_o nativity_n of_o john_n baptist_n &_o of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o all_o this_o they_o
because_o he_o be_v absolute_a professor_n and_o owner_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v and_o also_o have_v sovereign_a rule_n over_o all_o thing_n at_o his_o will_n now_o out_o of_o this_o first_o property_n of_o god_n we_o may_v gather_v a_o strong_a motive_n to_o induce_v we_o to_o pray_v unto_o he_o alone_o for_o see_v all_o thing_n be_v he_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n whatsoever_o therefore_o we_o must_v come_v to_o he_o for_o the_o grace_n and_o blessing_n which_o we_o desire_v the_o power_n oftentimes_o earthly_a prince_n have_v kingdom_n yet_o want_v power_n but_o god_n have_v kingdom_n and_o power_n also_o yea_o his_o power_n be_v infinite_a and_o he_o can_v do_v all_o that_o he_o will_v and_o more_o than_o he_o will_v as_o for_o those_o thing_n which_o come_v of_o impotency_n he_o can_v not_o do_v they_o and_o if_o he_o can_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v omnipotent_a and_o as_o he_o be_v omnipotent_a in_o himself_o so_o all_o the_o power_n which_o any_o creature_n have_v be_v from_o he_o alone_o question_n how_o can_v this_o be_v see_v the_o devil_n have_v power_n to_o sin_n which_o be_v not_o from_o god_n ans._n to_o sin_n be_v no_o power_n but_o rather_o a_o want_n of_o power_n otherwise_o all_o the_o strength_n and_o power_n satan_n have_v be_v of_o god_n and_o from_o this_o second_o property_n be_v take_v another_o motive_n to_o move_v we_o to_o pray_v unto_o god_n because_o all_o power_n be_v he_o we_o can_v never_o do_v any_o of_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o ask_v but_o by_o power_n receive_v from_o he_o thou_o be_v the_o glory_n this_o three_o property_n of_o god_n arise_v from_o the_o two_o former_a for_o see_v the_o title_n and_o interest_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o the_o power_n whereby_o they_o be_v dispose_v and_o govern_v be_v of_o god_n therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o glory_n be_v he_o yea_o in_o he_o be_v fullness_n of_o glory_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o creature_n be_v all_o of_o he_o to_o sinful_a man_n belong_v nothing_o but_o shame_n and_o confusion_n dan._n 9.7_o this_o three_o property_n minister_v a_o three_o motive_n to_o induce_v man_n to_o pray_v unto_o god_n alone_o for_o see_v all_o glory_n by_o right_n be_v he_o therefore_o we_o must_v invocate_v hi●_n holy_a name_n that_o in_o so_o do_v we_o may_v give_v he_o the_o glory_n due_a unto_o he_o for_o ever_o the_o word_n in_o the_o original_n be_v for_o age_n now_o a_o age_n signify_v the_o space_n of_o a_o hundred_o year_n but_o here_o it_o be_v take_v for_o eternity_n because_o eternity_n be_v nothing_o but_o multiplication_n of_o age_n and_o as_o eternity_n be_v here_o note_v by_o age_n so_o on_o the_o contrary_n we_o read_v that_o eternity_n be_v take_v for_o a_o certain_a and_o distinct_a time_n gen._n 17.8_o god_n promise_v abraham_n to_o give_v he_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n for_o a_o everlasting_a possession_n that_o be_v for_o a_o long_a season_n for_o else_o abraham_n seed_n shall_v inherit_v the_o land_n until_o this_o time_n which_o it_o do_v not_o wherefore_o as_o often_o the_o whole_a be_v put_v for_o the_o part_n uz._n eternity_n for_o a_o certain_a time_n so_o here_o the_o part_n be_v put_v for_o the_o whole_a age_n for_o eternity_n this_o also_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o earthly_a prince_n and_o the_o mighty_a jehovah_n they_o have_v kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n for_o a_o short_a time_n but_o he_o absolute_o and_o for_o ever_o 2._o the_o use_n 1._o here_o we_o learn_v in_o prayer_n to_o abase_v ourselves_o before_o god_n and_o utter_o to_o deny_v all_o that_o be_v in_o us._n kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n be_v all_o his_o not_o we_o we_o be_v no_o better_a than_o rebel_n and_o traitor_n to_o he_o if_o we_o have_v any_o good_a thing_n it_o be_v from_o he_o even_o the_o grace_n whereby_o we_o pray_v and_o he_o that_o in_o prayer_n will_v not_o confess_v this_o shall_v no_o more_o be_v hear_v than_o the_o insolent_a beggar_n that_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v his_o want_n 2._o second_o in_o prayer_n we_o learn_v that_o we_o must_v be_v persuade_v of_o two_o thing_n and_o build_v upon_o they_o god_n power_n and_o will_v his_o power_n in_o that_o he_o be_v able_a his_o will_n in_o that_o he_o be_v careful_a to_o perform_v our_o request_n as_o it_o be_v note_v in_o the_o preface_n the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v signify_v by_o kingdom_n and_o power_n the_o second_o be_v note_v in_o that_o glory_n be_v he_o 2._o cor._n 1.20_o for_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n in_o he_o be_v yea_o and_o amen_o unto_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 3._o again_o we_o gather_v that_o prayer_n &_o thanksgiving_n must_v go_v together_o for_o as_o in_o the_o six_o petition_n we_o make_v request_n unto_o god_n so_o in_o these_o word_n we_o praise_v he_o &_o thereby_o give_v he_o thanks_n phil._n 4.6_o but_o in_o all_o thing_n let_v your_o request_n be_v show_v to_o god_n in_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n with_o thanksgiving_n there_o be_v none_o but_o in_o want_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o pray_v but_o when_o we_o have_v receive_v we_o be_v slack_a in_o give_v of_o thanks_n but_o he_o which_o will_v pray_v aright_o must_v join_v they_o both_o together_o and_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o god_n praise_n stand_v in_o these_o three_o point_n 1._o that_o he_o be_v a_o absolute_a king_n 2._o that_o he_o have_v absolute_a power_n to_o rule_v all_o thing_n 3._o that_o have_v power_n and_o a_o kingdom_n he_o have_v glory_n also_o which_o appear_v in_o the_o hold_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o the_o show_v of_o his_o power_n in_o govern_v of_o it_o 4._o whatsoever_o we_o ask_v we_o must_v refer_v it_o to_o god_n glory_n this_o be_v the_o first_o thing_n which_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o crave_v and_o the_o last_o we_o be_v to_o perform_v because_o it_o be_v note_v both_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o prayer_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o use_n of_o these_o word_n altogether_o now_o let_v we_o make_v use_n of_o they_o particular_o 1._o whereas_o we_o say_v thou_o be_v the_o kingdom_n magistrate_n &_o ruler_n must_v know_v that_o all_o the_o authority_n and_o rule_n which_o they_o have_v be_v from_o the_o lord_n &_o therefore_o they_o must_v remember_v to_o order_v themselves_o as_o god_n vicegerent_n use_v their_o power_n to_o bring_v man_n in_o subjection_n to_o god_n law_n and_o refer_v all_o their_o calling_n to_o his_o glory_n 2._o where_o we_o say_v thou_o be_v the_o power_n we_o be_v admonish_v when_o we_o be_v to_o perform_v any_o work_n as_o to_o do_v service_n to_o god_n to_o keep_v ourselves_o in_o the_o compass_n of_o our_o calling_n and_o that_o we_o have_v no_o power_n of_o ourselves_o &_o for_o this_o cause_n we_o must_v ask_v power_n at_o god_n hand_n that_o we_o may_v be_v enable_v to_o walk_v upright_o before_o he_o and_o do_v our_o duty_n 3._o in_o say_v thou_o be_v the_o glory_n we_o learn_v that_o if_o we_o will_v have_v a_o good_a report_n and_o praise_n among_o man_n we_o must_v above_o all_o thing_n seek_v god_n glory_n not_o regard_v so_o much_o our_o own_o if_o he_o give_v thou_o praise_v among_o man_n give_v he_o thanks_n if_o not_o be_v content_a because_o all_o glory_n be_v he_o amen_n 1._o the_o meaning_n we_o have_v hear_v the_o preface_n and_o the_o petition_n what_o they_o be_v now_o follow_v the_o three_o part_n which_o be_v the_o assent_n or_o testification_n of_o faith_n require_v in_o prayer_n in_o this_o word_n amen_o and_o it_o contain_v more_o than_o man_n at_o the_o first_o will_v imagine_v it_o signify_v certain_o so_o be_v it_o or_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o 2._o cor._n 1.20_o it_o be_v often_o take_v for_o a_o bare_a assent_n of_o the_o people_n say_v amen_o to_o the_o minister_n but_o in_o this_o place_n it_o contain_v more_o for_o every_o point_n in_o this_o prayer_n be_v not_o only_o a_o direction_n for_o public_a prayer_n but_o for_o private_a also_o and_o must_v be_v say_v as_o well_o of_o the_o minister_n as_o of_o the_o people_n now_o then_o there_o be_v two_o principal_a thing_n in_o prayer_n the_o first_o a_o desire_n of_o grace_n the_o second_o faith_n whereby_o we_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v grant_v thing_n desire_v the_o first_o be_v express_v in_o the_o six_o petition_n the_o latter_a be_v set_v forth_o in_o this_o word_n amen_o carry_v this_o sense_n in_o effect_n as_o we_o have_v crave_v these_o thing_n at_o thy_o hand_n o_o lord_n so_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o for_o christ_n ●ake_z in_o thy_o good_a time_n thou_o will_v grant_v they_o to_o us._n therefore_o this_o part_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o the_o former_a by_o how_o much_o our_o faith_n be_v more_o excellent_a they_o our_o desire_n
and_o this_o sanctification_n be_v throughout_o the_o whole_a man_n in_o the_o spirit_n soul_n and_o mind_n 1._o thess._n 5.23_o and_o here_o the_o spirit_n signify_v the_o mind_n and_o memory_n the_o soul_n the_o will_n and_o affection_n xxxiiii_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v the_o enlighten_v of_o it_o with_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n word_n it_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n either_o spiritual_a understanding_n or_o spiritual_a wisdom_n spiritual_a understanding_n be_v a_o general_a conceive_v of_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v do_v or_o not_o to_o be_v do_v out_o of_o god_n word_n spiritual_a wisdom_n be_v a_o worthy_a grace_n of_o god_n by_o which_o a_o man_n be_v able_a to_o understand_v out_o of_o god_n word_n what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v or_o not_o to_o be_v do_v in_o any_o particular_a thing_n or_o action_n according_a to_o the_o circumstance_n of_o person_n time_n place_n etc._n etc._n both_o these_o be_v in_o every_o christian_n otherwise_o paul_n will_v never_o have_v pray_v for_o the_o colossian_n 1.9_o that_o they_o may_v be_v fulfil_v with_o knowledge_n of_o god_n will_n in_o all_o wisdom_n and_o spiritual_a understanding_n in_o both_o these_o excel_v david_n who_o testify_v of_o himself_o that_o god_n word_n 105._o be_v a_o lantern_n to_o his_o foot_n and_o a_o light_n to_o his_o path_n and_o that_o 98,99_o god_n by_o his_o commandment_n have_v make_v he_o wise_a than_o his_o enemy_n that_o he_o have_v more_o understanding_n than_o all_o his_o teacher_n because_o god_n testimony_n be_v his_o meditation_n 100_o that_o he_o understand_v more_o than_o the_o ancient_a because_o he_o keep_v god_n precept_n the_o property_n of_o the_o mind_n enlighten_v be_v special_o two_o the_o first_o be_v that_o by_o it_o a_o christian_a see_v his_o own_o blindness_n ignorance_n and_o vanity_n as_o appear_v in_o david_n who_o be_v a_o prophet_n of_o god_n yet_o pray_v 18._o open_v my_o eye_n o_o lord_n that_o i_o may_v see_v the_o wonder_n of_o thy_o law_n and_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o godly_a so_o much_o bewail_v the_o blindness_n of_o their_o mind_n contrariwise_o the_o wicked_a 9.41_o man_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o blindness_n think_v himself_o to_o see_v the_o second_o be_v that_o the_o mind_n run_v and_o be_v occupy_v in_o a_o continual_a meditation_n of_o god_n word_n so_o david_n say_v the_o 1.2_o righteous_a man_n delight_n be_v in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o his_o law_n do_v he_o meditate_v day_n and_o night_n xxxv_o the_o memory_n also_o be_v sanctify_v in_o that_o it_o can_v both_o keep_v and_o remember_v that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o agreeable_a to_o god_n will_v memory_n whereas_o natural_o it_o best_o remember_v lewdness_n and_o wickedness_n and_o vanity_n this_o holy_a memory_n be_v in_o david_n 119.11_o i_o have_v hide_v thy_o promise_n in_o my_o heart_n that_o i_o may_v not_o sin_v against_o thou_o and_o marie_n 19_o keep_v all_o the_o say_n of_o christ_n and_o ponder_v they_o in_o her_o heart_n and_o to_o the_o exercise_n of_o this_o memory_n solomon_n have_v a_o good_a lesson_n my_o son_n harken_v unto_o my_o word_n incline_v thy_o ear_n unto_o my_o say_n 2.1_o let_v they_o not_o depart_v from_o thy_o eye_n but_o keep_v they_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o thy_o heart_n xxxvi_o furthermore_o the_o will_n of_o a_o christian_a be_v renew_a and_o purify_v by_o christ_n will_n which_o appear_v in_o that_o it_o be_v so_o far_o forth_o free_v from_o sin_n that_o it_o can_v will_n &_o choose_v that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o refuse_v that_o which_o be_v evil_a according_a to_o that_o of_o paul_n 13._o it_o be_v god_n which_o work_v in_o you_o the_o will_n and_o the_o deed_n even_o of_o his_o good_a pleasure_n now_o if_o a_o man_n be_v consider_v as_o he_o be_v natural_o he_o can_v neither_o will_n nor_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v good_a but_o only_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a 21._o for_o he_o be_v sell_v under_o sin_n as_o the_o ox_n or_o the_o ass_n &_o commit_v iniquity_n as_o the_o fish_n draw_v in_o water_n yea_o he_o be_v in_o bondage_n under_o satan_n who_o inspire_v his_o mind_n with_o vile_a motion_n and_o bow_v his_o will_n affection_n and_o the_o member_n of_o his_o body_n to_o his_o curse_a will_n so_o that_o for_o his_o life_n he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n but_o sin_n &_o rebel_v against_o god_n and_o it_o must_v be_v remember_v that_o although_o the_o christian_a man_n will_n be_v free_v in_o part_n from_o the_o bondage_n of_o sin_n in_o this_o life_n yet_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v free_a from_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n until_o the_o life_n to_o come_v for_o 14._o paul_n that_o worthy_a saint_n say_v of_o himself_o be_v regenerate_v that_o he_o be_v carnal_a and_o sell_v under_o sin_n xxxvii_o affection_n sanctify_a affection_n be_v know_v by_o this_o that_o they_o 12.9_o be_v move_v &_o incline_v to_o that_o whiah_o be_v good_a to_o embrace_v it_o &_o be_v not_o common_o affect_v and_o stir_v with_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a unless_o it_o be_v to_o eschew_v it_o example_n hereof_o be_v these_o which_o follow_v 12.15_o to_o rejoice_v with_o they_o that_o rejoice_v and_o to_o weep_v with_o they_o that_o weep_v 10.20_o to_o rejoice_v because_o a_o man_n name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n 143.6_o to_o desire_v god_n presence_n and_o favour_n as_o the_o dry_a land_n desire_v water_n 66.2_o to_o fear_v and_o tremble_v at_o god_n word_n 48.2_o to_o long_o and_o to_o faint_v after_o the_o place_n where_o god_n be_v worship_v 136_o to_o be_v vex_v in_o soul_n from_o day_n to_o day_n in_o see_v and_o hear_v the_o unlawful_a deed_n of_o man_n and_o to_o shed_v river_n of_o tear_n because_o man_n break_v god_n commandment_n 11._o in_o fervency_n of_o spirit_n to_o serve_v the_o lord_n 12_o to_o put_v on_o the_o bowel_n of_o compassion_n towards_o the_o misery_n of_o man_n 4.26_o to_o be_v angry_a and_o sin_n not_o 7.11_o to_o sorrow_n for_o the_o displease_v of_o god_n 14._o to_o love_v the_o brethren_n i●_n christ._n 128._o to_o admire_v at_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 127._o to_o love_n god_n commandment_n above_o gold_n 8.10_o to_o admire_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o other_o 2.11_o in_o fear_n to_o serve_v god_n and_o to_o rejoice_v in_o tremble_v 9.31_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1.6_o to_o be_v heavy_a through_o manifold_a temptation_n 4.13_o to_o rejoice_v in_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ._n 20,21_o to_o wait_v on_o the_o lord_n to_o rejoice_v in_o he_o and_o to_o trust_v in_o his_o holy_a name_n 8.23_o to_o wait_v for_o the_o full_a redemption_n 5.2_o to_o sigh_v desire_v to_o enjoy_v eternal_a life_n 8._o to_o love_v the_o habitation_n of_o god_n house_n and_o the_o place_n where_o his_o honour_n dwell_v glory_n to_o esteem_v all_o thing_n as_o loss_n and_o dung_n in_o respect_n of_o christ._n xxxviii_o but_o among_o all_o these_o sanctify_a affection_n there_o be_v four_o special_o to_o be_v mark_v the_o first_o be_v a_o zeal_n for_o god_n glory_n by_o which_o a_o christian_a be_v thus_o affect_v that_o rather_o than_o god_n shall_v loose_v his_o glory_n he_o can_v be_v content_a to_o have_v his_o own_o soul_n damn_v as_o it_o be_v with_o moses_n who_o fear_v least_o god_n shall_v loose_v his_o glory_n if_o he_o do_v utter_o destroy_v the_o israelite_n for_o their_o idolatry_n who_o he_o have_v choose_v to_o be_v his_o people_n &_o therefore_o in_o this_o respect_n pray_v unto_o the_o lord_n 12._o therefore_o now_o if_o thou_o pardon_v their_o sin_n thy_o mercy_n shall_v appear_v but_o if_o thou_o will_v not_o i_o pray_v thou_o raze_v i_o out_o of_o the_o book_n which_o thou_o have_v write_v 9.3_o and_o paul_n can_v have_v wish_v with_o all_o his_o heart_n to_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o all_o fellowship_n with_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v give_v up_o to_o eternal_a destruction_n for_o his_o country_n man_n the_o jew_n and_o for_o god_n glory_n special_o some_o may_v say_v this_o affection_n be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o but_o particular_a to_o such_o as_o be_v lead_v with_o such_o a_o exceed_a affection_n as_o these_o holy_a man_n be_v and_o which_o have_v their_o heart_n so_o pierce_v and_o kindle_v with_o divine_a love_n and_o so_o ravish_v with_o the_o same_o out_o of_o themselves_o that_o they_o forget_v all_o other_o thing_n yea_o themselves_o have_v nothing_o before_o their_o eye_n but_o god_n and_o his_o glory_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o affection_n be_v common_a to_o all_o though_o the_o measure_n of_o it_o be_v diverse_a in_o some_o more_o in_o some_o less_o which_o appear_v in_o
and_o put_v his_o household_n in_o order_n and_o go_v and_o hang_v himself_o and_o the_o five_o foolish_a virgin_n content_v themselves_o with_o the_o blaze_a lamp_n of_o a_o bare_a profession_n never_o seek_v for_o the_o horn_n of_o last_a oil_n of_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n that_o may_v furnish_v and_o trim_a that_o lamp_n both_o in_o life_n &_o death_n but_o let_v we_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n cast_v off_o this_o damnable_a folly_n first_o of_o all_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o his_o righteousness_n and_o lead_v our_o life_n in_o faith_n and_o obedience_n that_o we_o may_v die_v according_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o first_o point_n of_o doctrine_n namely_o that_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a way_n whereby_o a_o man_n may_v die_v well_o now_o i_o come_v to_o the_o second_o whereas_o therefore_o solomon_n say_v that_o the_o day_n of_o death_n be_v better_a than_o the_o day_n of_o birth_n we_o be_v further_o teach_v that_o such_o as_o true_o believe_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v not_o to_o fear_v death_n overmuch_o i_o say_v overmuch_o because_o they_o must_v partly_o fear_v it_o &_o partly_o not_o fear_v it_o they_o must_v for_o two_o cause_n the_o first_o because_o death_n be_v the_o destruction_n of_o humane_a nature_n in_o a_o man_n own_o self_n and_o other_o &_o in_o this_o respect_n christ_n fear_v it_o without_o sin_n and_o we_o must_v not_o fear_v it_o otherwise_o then_o we_o fear_v sickness_n and_o poverty_n and_o famine_n with_o other_o sorrow_n of_o body_n and_o mind_n which_o god_n will_v not_o have_v we_o to_o despise_v or_o light_o regard_v but_o to_o feel_v with_o some_o pain_n because_o they_o be_v correction_n and_o punishment_n for_o sin_n and_o he_o do_v therefore_o lay_v upon_o we_o pain_n and_o torment_n that_o they_o may_v be_v fear_v and_o eschew_v and_o that_o by_o eschew_v they_o we_o may_v further_o learn_v to_o eschew_v the_o cause_n of_o they_o which_o be_v sin_n and_o by_o experience_n in_o feel_v of_o pain_n acknowledge_v that_o god_n be_v a_o judge_n and_o enemy_n of_o sin_n and_o be_v exceed_o angry_a with_o it_o the_o second_o cause_n of_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n be_v the_o loss_n of_o the_o church_n or_o commonwealth_n when_o we_o or_o other_o be_v deprive_v of_o they_o which_o be_v indeed_o or_o may_v have_v be_v a_o help_n stay_v and_o comfort_n to_o either_o of_o they_o and_o who_o death_n have_v procure_v some_o public_a or_o private_a loss_n again_o we_o be_v not_o to_o fear_v death_n but_o to_o be_v glad_a of_o it_o and_o that_o for_o many_o cause_n first_o of_o all_o in_o it_o we_o have_v occasion_n to_o show_v our_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n which_o we_o owe_v unto_o god_n when_o he_o call_v we_o out_o of_o this_o world_n as_o christ_n say_v father_n not_o my_o will_n but_o thy_o will_n be_v do_v second_o all_o sin_n be_v abolish_v by_o death_n and_o we_o then_o cease_v to_o offend_v god_n any_o more_o as_o we_o have_v do_v three_o the_o dead_a body_n be_v bring_v into_o a_o better_a condition_n than_o ever_o it_o be_v in_o this_o life_n for_o by_o death_n it_o be_v make_v insensible_a and_o by_o that_o mean_v it_o be_v free_v from_o all_o the_o misery_n and_o calamity_n of_o this_o life_n and_o it_o cease_v to_o be_v either_o a_o active_a or_o passive_a instrument_n of_o sin_n whereas_o in_o the_o life_n time_n it_o be_v both_o four_o it_o give_v the_o soul_n passage_n to_o rest_n life_n and_o celestial_a glory_n in_o which_o we_o shall_v see_v god_n as_o he_o be_v perfect_o know_v he_o and_o praise_v his_o name_n for_o ever_o keep_v without_o intermission_n a_o eternal_a sabbath_n therefore_o paul_n say_v i_o desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o be_v with_o christ_n for_o that_o be_v best_a of_o all_o five_o god_n execute_v his_o judgement_n upon_o the_o wicked_a and_o purge_v his_o church_n by_o death_n now_o in_o all_o these_o respect_v godly_a man_n have_v cause_n not_o to_o fear_v and_o sorrow_n but_o to_o rejoice_v in_o their_o own_o death_n and_o the_o death_n of_o other_o three_o if_o the_o day_n of_o death_n be_v so_o excellent_a yea_o a_o day_n of_o happiness_n than_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o desire_v death_n and_o man_n do_v not_o always_o sin_n in_o wish_v for_o death_n paul_n say_v i_o desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o again_o o_o miserable_a man_n who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o this_o body_n of_o death_n yet_o this_o desire_n must_v not_o be_v simple_a but_o restrain_v with_o certain_a respect_n which_o be_v these_o first_o death_n must_v be_v desire_v so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o free_v we_o from_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n second_o as_o it_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o immediate_a fellowship_n of_o christ_n and_o god_n himself_o in_o heaven_n three_o death_n may_v be_v lawful_o desire_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o trouble_n and_o misery_n of_o this_o life_n two_o caveat_n be_v observe_v the_o first_o that_o this_o desire_n must_v not_o be_v immoderate_a the_o second_o it_o must_v be_v join_v with_o submission_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n if_o either_o of_o these_o be_v want_v the_o desire_n be_v faulty_a and_o therefore_o job_n and_o jeremie_n and_o jonas_n fail_v herein_o because_o they_o desire_v death_n be_v carry_v away_o with_o impatience_n on_o the_o contrary_a also_o a_o man_n may_v desire_v a_o continuance_n of_o life_n ezechias_n pray_v and_o desire_v to_o live_v 25._o when_o he_o hear_v the_o message_n of_o present_a death_n that_o he_o may_v do_v service_n to_o god_n and_o paul_n desire_v to_o live_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o philippian_n that_o he_o may_v further_o their_o ●_z though_o in_o regard_n of_o himself_o to_o die_v be_v advantage_n to_o he_o last_o if_o death_n join_v with_o reformation_n of_o life_n be_v so_o bless_v than_o the_o death_n of_o the_o unbelieved_a and_o unrepentant_a sinner_n be_v every_o way_n curse_a &_o most_o horrible_a reason_n be_v these_o first_o it_o be_v the_o destruction_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n second_o in_o it_o there_o be_v no_o comfort_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v find_v no_o mitigation_n of_o pain_n and_o no_o good_a thing_n that_o may_v counter●aile_v the_o misery_n thereof_o three_o that_o which_o be_v the_o most_o fearful_a thing_n of_o all_o bodily_a death_n be_v the_o beginning_n os_fw-la eternal_a death_n desperation_n and_o infernal_a torment_n without_o hope_n of_o deliverance_n therefore_o as_o i_o begin_v so_o i_o end_v have_v care_n to_o live_v well_o and_o die_v well_o finis_fw-la a_o addition_n of_o thing_n that_o come_v to_o my_o mind_n afterward_o the_o last_o combat_n with_o the_o devil_n in_o the_o pang_n of_o death_n be_v oftentimes_o most_o dangerous_a of_o all_o for_o than_o he_o will_v not_o urge_v man_n to_o desperation_n know_v that_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o shall_v stir_v they_o up_o to_o resist_v he_o but_o he_o labour_v with_o they_o that_o they_o will_v not_o resist_v he_o when_o he_o assault_v they_o and_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o endeavour_n to_o extinguish_v hope_n and_o this_o be_v not_o do_v in_o any_o other_o temptation_n in_o which_o faith_n or_o hope_v alone_o be_v impugn_a whereas_o in_o this_o they_o be_v both_o impugn_a together_o this_o must_v be_v think_v upon_o for_o when_o the_o devil_n temptation_n be_v not_o to_o resist_v his_o temptation_n it_o be_v most_o deceitful_a of_o all_o and_o it_o be_v more_o easy_a to_o overcome_v the_o enemy_n that_o compel_v we_o to_o fight_v then_o he_o that_o dissuade_v we_o from_o it_o the_o temptation_n of_o m._n john_n knox_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o death_n be_v worth_a the_o mark_v knoxi_n he_o lay_v on_o his_o death-bedde_n silent_a for_o the_o space_n of_o four_o hour_n very_o often_o give_v great_a sigh_n sob_n and_o groan_n so_o as_o the_o stander_n by_o well_o perceive_v that_o he_o be_v trouble_v with_o some_o grievous_a temptation_n and_o when_o at_o length_n he_o be_v raise_v in_o his_o bed_n they_o ask_v he_o how_o he_o do_v to_o who_o he_o answer_v thus_o that_o in_o his_o life_n time_n he_o have_v endure_v many_o combat_n and_o conflict_n with_o satan_n but_o that_o now_o most_o mighty_o the_o roar_a lion_n have_v assault_v he_o often_o say_v he_o before_o he_o set_v my_o sin_n before_o my_o eye_n often_o he_o urge_v i_o to_o desperation_n often_o he_o labour_v to_o entangle_v i_o with_o the_o delight_n of_o the_o world_n but_o be_v vanquish_v by_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o can_v not_o prevail_v but_o now_o he_o assault_v i_o another_o way_n for_o the_o wily_a serpent_n will_v persuade_v i_o that_o
a_o golden_a chain_n or_o the_o description_n of_o theology_n contain_v the_o order_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n and_o damnation_n according_a to_o god_n word_n a_o view_n whereof_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o table_n annex_v hereunto_o be_v adjoin_v the_o order_n which_o m._n theodore_n beza_n use_v in_o comfort_v afflict_a conscience_n print_a by_o john_n legat_n printer_n to_o the_o university_n of_o cambridge_n 1600._o to_o the_o christian_a reader_n christian_n reader_n there_o be_v at_o this_o day_n four_o several_a opinion_n of_o the_o order_n of_o god_n predestination_n the_o first_o be_v of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a pelagian_n who_o place_n the_o cause_n of_o god_n predestination_n in_o man_n in_o that_o they_o hold_v that_o god_n do_v ordain_v man_n either_o to_o life_n or_o death_n according_a as_o he_o do_v foresee_v that_o they_o will_v by_o their_o natural_a freewill_n either_o reject_v or_o receive_v grace_n offer_v the_o second_o of_o they_o who_o of_o some_o be_v term_v lutheran_n which_o teach_v that_o god_n foresee_v how_o all_o mankind_n be_v shut_v up_o under_o unbelief_n will_v therefore_o reject_v grace_n offer_v do_v hereupon_o purpose_v to_o choose_v some_o to_o salvation_n of_o his_o mere_a mercy_n without_o any_o respect_n of_o their_o faith_n or_o good_a work_n and_o the_o rest_n to_o reject_v be_v move_v to_o do_v this_o because_o he_o do_v eternal_o foresee_v that_o they_o will_v reject_v his_o grace_n offer_v they_o in_o the_o gospel_n the_o three_o semipelagian_n papist_n which_o ascribe_v god_n predestination_n partly_o to_o mercy_n and_o partly_o to_o man_n foresee_v preparation_n and_o meritorious_a work_n the_o four_o of_o such_o as_o teach_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o execution_n of_o god_n predestination_n be_v his_o mercy_n in_o christ_n in_o they_o which_o be_v save_v and_o in_o they_o which_o perish_v the_o fall_n and_o corruption_n of_o man_n yet_o so_o as_o that_o the_o decree_n and_o eternal_a counsel_n of_o god_n concern_v they_o both_o have_v not_o any_o cause_n beside_o his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o these_o four_o opinion_n the_o three_o former_a i_o labour_v to_o oppugn_v as_o erroneous_a and_o to_o maintain_v the_o last_o as_o be_v truth_n which_o will_v bear_v weight_n in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n a_o further_a discourse_n whereof_o here_o i_o make_v bold_a to_o offer_v to_o thy_o godly_a consideration_n in_o read_v whereof_o regard_v not_o so_o much_o the_o thing_n itself_o pen_v very_o slender_o as_o my_o intent_n &_o affection_n who_o desire_v among_o the_o rest_n to_o cast_v my_o mite_n into_o the_o treasury_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o for_o want_v of_o gold_n pearl_n and_o pretions_n stone_n to_o bring_v a_o ram_n skin_n or_o twain_o and_o a_o little_a goat_n hair_n to_o the_o build_n of_o the_o lord_n tabernacle_n exod._n 35.23_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n grant_v that_o according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n thou_o may_v be_v strengthen_v by_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o inner_a man_n that_o christ_n may_v dwell_v in_o thy_o heart_n by_o faith_n to_o the_o end_n that_o thou_o be_v root_v and_o ground_v in_o love_n may_v be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v with_o all_o saint_n what_o be_v the_o breadth_n and_o length_n and_o height_n thereof_o &_o to_o know_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n which_o pass_v knowledge_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o all_o fullness_n of_o god_n amen_o farewell_n julie_n 23._o the_o year_n of_o the_o last_o patience_n of_o saint_n 1592._o thou_o in_o christ_n jesus_n w._n p._n a_o golden_a chain_n or_o the_o description_n of_o theologie_n the_o content_n 1_o of_o the_o body_n of_o scripture_n and_o theologie_n pag._n 1_o 2_o of_o god_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n ibid._n 3_o of_o the_o life_n of_o god_n pag._n 3_o 4_o of_o god_n glory_n and_o blessedness_n pag._n 5_o 5_o concern_v the_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n pag._n 6_o 6_o of_o god_n work_n and_o his_o decree_n pag._n 8_o 7_o of_o predestination_n and_o creation_n pag._n 10_o 8_o of_o angel_n pag._n 11_o 9_o of_o man_n &_o the_o state_n of_o innocence_n pag._n 12_o 10_o of_o sin_n and_o the_o fall_n of_o angel_n pag._n 13_o 11_o of_o man_n fall_n and_o disobedience_n pag._n 15_o 12_o of_o original_a sin_n pag._n 16_o 13_o of_o actual_a sin_n pag._n 19_o 14_o of_o the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n pag._n 22_o 15_o of_o election_n and_o of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o foundation_n thereof_o pag._n 23_o 16_o of_o the_o union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o christ._n pag._n 25_o 17_o of_o the_o distinction_n of_o both_o nature_n pag._n 27_o 18_o of_o christ_n nativity_n and_o office_n pag._n 27_o 19_o concern_v the_o outward_a mean_n of_o execute_v the_o decree_n of_o election_n and_o of_o the_o decalogue_n pag._n 36_o 20_o of_o the_o first_o commandment_n pag._n 38_o 21_o of_o the_o second_o commandment_n pag._n 42_o 22_o of_o the_o three_o commandment_n pag._n 54_o 23_o of_o the_o four_o commandment_n pag._n 61_o 24_o of_o the_o five_o commandment_n pag._n 66_o 25_o of_o the_o six_o commandment_n pag._n 73_o 26_o of_o the_o seven_o commandment_n pag._n 82_o 27_o of_o the_o eight_o commandment_n pag._n 88_o 28_o concern_v the_o nine_o commandment_n pag._n 95_o 29_o of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n pag._n 100_o 30_o of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o law_n pag._n 101_o 31_o of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n pag._n 102_o 32_o of_o the_o sacrament_n pag._n 103_o 33_o of_o baptism_n pag._n 107_o 34_o of_o the_o lord_n supper_n pag._n 111_o 35_o of_o the_o degree_n of_o execute_v god_n decree_n in_o election_n pag._n 113_o 36_o concern_v the_o first_o degree_n of_o the_o declaration_n of_o god_n love_n pag._n 114_o 37_o concern_v the_o second_o degree_n of_o the_o declaration_n of_o god_n love_n pag._n 121_o 38_o concern_v the_o three_o degree_n of_o the_o declaration_n of_o god_n love_n pag._n 124_o 39_o of_o repentance_n and_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o pag._n 128_o 40_o of_o christian_a warfare_n pag._n 129_o 41_o of_o the_o first_o assault_n pag._n 130_o 42_o of_o the_o second_o assault_n pag._n 131_o 43_o of_o the_o three_o assault_n pag._n 134_o 44_o of_o the_o patient_a bear_n of_o the_o crosse._n pag._n 136_o 45_o of_o the_o call_n upon_o god_n pag._n 138_o 46_o of_o christian_a apology_n and_o martyrdom_n pag._n 139_o 47_o of_o edification_n and_o alm_n among_o the_o faithful_a pag._n 140_o 48_o of_o the_o four_o degree_n of_o the_o declaration_n of_o god_n love_n and_o of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o elect_a after_o this_o life_n pag._n 141_o 49_o of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o elect_a at_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n pag._n 143_o 50_o of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o elect_a after_o judgement_n pag._n 144_o 51_o concern_v the_o order_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n pag._n 146_o 52_o concern_v the_o decree_n of_o reprobation_n pag._n 163_o 53_o concern_v the_o ex●●●tion_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o reprobation_n pag._n 164_o 54_o concern_v a_o new_a devise_a doctrine_n of_o predestination_n teach_v by_o some_o new_a and_o late_a divine_n pag._n 167_o 55_o of_o the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o reprobate_n when_o they_o be_v dead_a pag._n 175_o 56_o of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o reprobate_n in_o hell_n pag._n 176_o 57_o of_o the_o application_n of_o predestinanation_n ibid._n a_o eposition_n of_o the_o symbol_n or_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o content_n the_o creed_n pag._n 185_o faith_n pag._n 187_o god_n pag._n 198_o the_o three_o person_n pag._n 202_o the_o father_n pag._n 205_o god_n omnipotency_n pag._n 212_o the_o creation_n 217._o 221_o god_n counsel_n pag._n 218_o the_o creation_n of_o heaven_n pag._n 228_o the_o creation_n of_o angel_n pag._n 231_o the_o creation_n of_o man._n pag._n 236_o god_n providence_n pag._n 242_o adam_n fall_n and_o original_a sin_n pag._n 252_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n pag._n 259_o the_o title_n jesus_n pag._n 262_o the_o title_n christ._n pag._n 266_o the_o title_n son_n pag._n 271_o the_o title_n lord._n pag._n 278_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ._n pag._n 279_o christ_n humiliation_n pag._n 295_o christ_n passion_n pag._n 297_o christ_n arraignment_n pag._n 300_o christ_n execution_n pag._n 328_o christ_n sacrifice_n pag._n 350_o christ_n triumph_n pag._n 356_o christ_n burial_n pag._n 376_o the_o descension_n of_o christ._n pag._n 372_o christ_n exaltation_n pag._n 370_o christ_n resurrection_n pag._n 379_o christ_n ascension_n pag._n 396_o christ_n sit_v at_o etc._n etc._n pag._n 407_o christ_n intercession_n pag._n 409_o christ_n kingdom_n pag._n 417_o the_o last_o judgement_n pag._n 420_o the_o holy_a ghost_n pag._n 436_o the_o church_n 451.488_o predestination_n pag._n 453_o the_o
be_v evident_a 1._o by_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n 2._o by_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n 3._o by_o the_o distinction_n of_o thing_n honest_a and_o dishonest_a 4._o by_o the_o terror_n of_o conscience_n 5._o by_o the_o regiment_n of_o civil_a society_n 6._o the_o order_n of_o all_o cause_n have_v ever_o recourse_n to_o some_o former_a beginning_n 7._o the_o determination_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o their_o several_a end_n 8._o the_o consent_n of_o all_o man_n well_o in_o their_o wit_n god_n be_v jehovah_n elohim_n exod._n 6.2_o and_o elohim_n speak_v unto_o moses_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o i_o be_o jehovah_n and_o i_o appear_v unto_o abraham_n to_o isaac_n and_o to_o jacob_n by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n almighty_a but_o by_o my_o name_n jehovah_n be_v i_o not_o know_v unto_o they_o exod_n 3.13_o if_o they_o say_v unto_o i_o what_o be_v his_o name_n what_o shall_v i_o say_v unto_o they_o and_o god_n answer_v moses_n i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o also_o he_o say_v thus_o shall_v thou_o say_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n i_o be_o have_v send_v i_o unto_o you_o and_o god_n speak_v further_o to_o moses_n thus_o shall_v thou_o say_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n jehovah_n elohim_n etc._n etc._n have_v send_v i_o unto_o you_o in_o these_o word_n the_o first_o title_n of_o god_n declare_v his_o nature_n the_o second_o his_o person_n the_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v his_o most_o lively_a and_o most_o perfect_a essence_n the_o perfection_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v his_o absolute_a constitution_n by_o the_o which_o he_o be_v whole_o complete_a within_o himself_o exod._a 3._o 13._o i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o act._n 17.24_o god_n that_o make_v the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v therein_o see_v that_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n dwell_v not_o in_o temple_n make_v with_o hand_n neither_o be_v worship_v with_o man_n hand_n as_o though_o he_o need_v any_o thing_n see_v he_o give_v to_o all_o life_n and_o breath_n and_o all_o thing_n the_o perfection_n of_o his_o nature_n be_v either_o simpleness_n or_o the_o infinitenes_n thereof_o the_o simpleness_n of_o his_o nature_n be_v that_o by_o which_o he_o be_v void_a of_o all_o logical_a relation_n he_o have_v not_o in_o he_o subject_n or_o adjunct_n joh._n 5.26_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v he_o give_v to_o the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o confer_v with_o joh._n 14.6_o i_o be_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n 1._o joh._n 1.7_o but_o if_o we_o walk_v in_o light_n as_o he_o be_v in_o light_n confer_v with_o v._n 5._o god_n be_v light_n and_o in_o he_o be_v no_o darkness_n hence_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o to_o have_v life_n and_o to_o be_v life_n to_o be_v in_o light_n and_o to_o be_v light_n in_o god_n be_v all_o one_o neither_o be_v god_n subject_n to_o generality_n or_o speciality_n whole_a or_o part_n matter_n or_o that_o which_o be_v make_v of_o matter_n for_o so_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o god_n diverse_a thing_n and_o one_o more_o perfect_a than_o another_o therefore_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o god_n be_v his_o essence_n and_o all_o that_o he_o be_v he_o be_v by_o essence_n the_o say_n of_o augustine_n in_o his_o 6._o book_n and_o 4._o chap._n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v fit_a to_o prove_v this_o in_o god_n say_v he_o to_o be_v and_o to_o be_v just_a or_o mighty_a be_v all_o one_o but_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n it_o be_v not_o all_o one_o to_o be_v and_o to_o be_v mighty_a or_o just_a for_o the_o mind_n may_v be_v destitute_a of_o these_o virtue_n and_o yet_o a_o mind_n hence_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v immutable_a and_o spiritual_a god_n immutabilitie_n of_o nature_n be_v that_o by_o which_o he_o be_v void_a of_o all_o composition_n division_n and_o change_v jam._n 1._o 17._o with_o god_n there_o be_v no_o variableness_n nor_o shadow_n of_o change_v mal._n 3.6_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n and_o be_o not_o change_v where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n repent_v etc._n etc._n gen._n 6.6_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o god_n change_v the_o action_n as_o man_n do_v that_o repent_v therefore_o repentance_n it_o signify_v not_o any_o mutation_n in_o god_n but_o in_o his_o action_n and_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v make_v and_o change_v by_o he_o god_n nature_n be_v spiritual_a in_o that_o it_o be_v incorporal_a and_o therefore_o invisible_a joh._n 4.24_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n 2._o cor._n 3._o 17._o the_o lord_n be_v the_o spirit_n 1._o tim._n 1.17_o to_o the_o king_n eternal_a immortal_a invisible_a only_o wise_a god_n be_v glory_n and_o honour_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o col._n 1.15_o who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n the_o infiniteness_n of_o god_n be_v twofolde_v his_o eternity_n and_o exceed_v greatness_n god_n eternity_n be_v that_o by_o which_o he_o be_v without_o beginning_n and_o end_v psal._n 90._o 2._o before_o the_o mountain_n be_v make_v and_o before_o thou_o have_v form_v the_o earth_n and_o the_o round_a world_n even_o from_o everlasting_a to_o everlasting_a thou_o be_v our_o god_n revel_n ●_o 8._o i_o be_o alpha_n and_o omega_n that_o be_v the_o beginning_n and_o end_v say_v the_o lord_n which_o be_v which_o be_v and_o which_o be_v to_o come_v god_n exceed_v greatness_n be_v that_o by_o which_o his_o incomprehensible_a nature_n be_v every_o where_o present_a both_z within_o and_o without_o the_o world_n psal._n 145.3_o great_a be_v the_o lord_n and_o worthy_a to_o be_v praise_v and_o his_o greatness_n be_v incomprehensible_a 1._o king_n 8.27_o be_v it_o true_a indeed_o that_o god_n will_v dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n behold_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n be_v not_o able_a to_o contain_v thou_o how_o much_o less_o be_v this_o house_n that_o i_o have_v build_v jer._n 23._o 24._o do_v not_o i_o fill_v the_o heaven_n and_o earth_n say_v the_o lord_n hence_o it_o be_v plain_a first_o that_o he_o be_v only_o one_o and_o that_o indivisible_a not_o many_o eph._n 4.5_o one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o deut._n 4._o 35._o unto_o thou_o it_o be_v show_v that_o thou_o may_v know_v that_o the_o lord_n he_o be_v god_n and_o that_o there_o be_v none_o but_o he_o alone_o 1._o cor._n 8.4_o we_o know_v that_o a_o idol_n be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o there_o be_v none_o other_o god_n but_o one_o and_o there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o thing_n infinite_a in_o nature_n second_o that_o god_n be_v the_o knower_n of_o the_o heart_n for_o nothing_o be_v hide_v from_o that_o nature_n which_o be_v within_o all_o thing_n and_o without_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v include_v in_o nothing_o nor_o exclude_v from_o any_o thing_n because_o 1._o king_n 8._o 39_o the_o lord_n search_v all_o heart_n and_o understand_v every_o work_n of_o the_o mind_n psal._n 139.1,2_o thou_o know_v my_o sit_n down_o and_o my_o rise_n up_o thou_o understand_v my_o cogitation_n a_o far_o off_o chap._n 3._o of_o the_o life_n of_o god_n hitherto_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o perfection_n of_o god_n nature_n now_o follow_v the_o life_n of_o god_n by_o which_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v in_o perpetual_a action_n live_v and_o move_v in_o itself_o psal._n 42._o 2._o my_o soul_n thirst_v for_o god_n even_o for_o the_o live_a god_n when_o shall_v i_o come_v and_o appear_v before_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n hebr._n 3._o 12._o see_v that_o there_o be_v not_o at_o any_o time_n in_o any_o of_o you_o a_o evil_a heart_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o live_a god_n the_o divine_a nature_n be_v especial_o in_o perpetual_a operation_n by_o three_o attribute_n the_o which_o do_v manifest_v the_o operation_n of_o god_n towards_o his_o creature_n these_o be_v his_o wisdom_n will_n and_o omnipotency_n the_o wisdom_n or_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v that_o by_o the_o which_o god_n do_v not_o by_o certain_a notion_n abstract_v from_o the_o thing_n themselves_o but_o by_o his_o own_o essence_n nor_o successive_o and_o by_o discourse_n of_o reason_n but_o by_o one_o eternal_a and_o immutable_a act_n of_o understanding_n distinct_o and_o perfect_o know_v himself_o and_o all_o other_o thing_n though_o infinite_a whether_o they_o have_v be_v or_o not_o matth._n 11.27_o no_o man_n know_v the_o son_n but_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o hebr._n 4._o 13._o there_o be_v nothing_o create_v which_o be_v not_o manifest_a in_o his_o sight_n but_o all_o thing_n be_v naked_a and_o open_a to_o his_o eye_n with_o who_o we_o have_v to_o do_v psal._n 147.5_o his_o wisdom_n be_v infinite_a god_n wisdom_n have_v these_o
you_o god_n be_v able_a of_o these_o stone_n to_o raise_v up_o child_n to_o abraham_n philip._n 3._o 21._o according_a to_o the_o work_n whereby_o he_o be_v able_a to_o subdue_v even_o all_o thing_n unto_o himself_o god_n actual_a power_n be_v that_o by_o which_o he_o cause_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v which_o he_o free_o will_n psal._n 135._o 6._o all_o thing_n which_o god_n will_v those_o he_o do_v in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n and_o in_o all_o depth_n chap._n 5._o of_o god_n glory_n and_o blessedness_n out_o of_o the_o former_a attribute_n by_o which_o the_o true_a jehovah_n be_v distinguish_v from_o a_o feign_a god_n and_o from_o idol_n arise_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o his_o blessedness_n god_n glory_n or_o majesty_n be_v the_o infinite_a excellency_n of_o his_o most_o simple_a and_o most_o holy_a divine_a nature_n hebr._n 1.3_o who_o be_v the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o ingrave_v form_n of_o his_o person_n etc._n etc._n dan._n 3._o thou_o be_v only_a god_n and_o glorious_a upon_o the_o earth_n by_o this_o we_o see_v that_o god_n only_o can_v know_v himself_o perfect_o joh._n 6.46_o not_o that_o any_o man_n have_v see_v the_o father_n save_v he_o which_o be_v of_o god_n he_o have_v see_v the_o father_n 1._o tim._n 6._o 16._o who_o only_o have_v immortality_n and_o dwell_v in_o the_o light_n that_o none_o can_v attain_v unto_o who_o never_o man_n see_v neither_o can_v see_v exod._n 33.18_o thou_o can_v not_o see_v my_o face_n notwithstanding_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a manifestation_n of_o god_n glory_n partly_o more_o obscure_a partly_o more_o apparent_a the_o more_o obscure_a manifestation_n be_v the_o vision_n of_o god_n majesty_n in_o this_o life_n by_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o mind_n through_o the_o help_n of_o thing_n perceive_v by_o the_o outward_a sense_n esa._n 6.1_o i_o see_v the_o lord_n sit_v upon_o a_o high_a throne_n and_o lift_v up_o and_o the_o low_a part_n thereof_o fill_v the_o temple_n exod._n ●3_n 22_o and_o while_o my_o glory_n pass_v by_o i_o will_v put_v thou_o in_o a_o cleave_a of_o the_o rock_n and_o will_v cover_v thou_o with_o my_o hand_n while_o i_o pass_v by_o after_o i_o will_v take_v away_o my_o hand_n and_o thou_o shall_v see_v my_o back_n part_n but_o my_o face_n shall_v not_o be_v see_v 1._o cor._n 13._o 12._o now_o we_o see_v as_o through_o a_o glass_n dark_o the_o more_o apparent_a manifestation_n of_o god_n be_v the_o contemplation_n of_o he_o in_o heaven_n face_n to_o face_n 1._o corinth_n 13._o 12._o but_o then_o shall_v we_o see_v face_n to_o face_n dan._n 7._o 9_o 10._o i_o behold_v till_o the_o throne_n be_v set_v up_o and_o the_o ancient_a of_o day_n do_v fit_a who_o garment_n be_v white_a as_o snow_n etc._n etc._n matth._n 19.16_o god_n blessedness_n be_v that_o by_o which_o god_n be_v in_o himself_o and_o of_o himself_o all_o sufficient_a gen._n 17.1_o i_o be_o god_n all_o sufficient_a walk_v before_o i_o and_o be_v thou_o upright_o col._n 2.2.9_o for_o in_o he_o dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a 1._o tim._n 6.5_o which_o in_o due_a time_n he_o shall_v show_v that_o be_v bless_v and_o prince_n only_o etc._n etc._n chap._n 5._o concern_v the_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n the_o person_n be_v they_o which_o subsist_v in_o one_o godhead_n be_v distinguish_v by_o incommunicable_a property_n 1._o joh._n 5.7_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o gen._n 19.24_o then_o jehovah_n reign_v upon_o sodom_n and_o upon_o gomorrah_n brimstone_n and_o fire_n from_o jehovah_n in_o heaven_n joh._n 1.1_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o that_o word_n be_v god_n they_o therefore_o be_v coequal_a and_o be_v distinguish_v not_o by_o degree_n but_o by_o order_n the_o constitution_n of_o a_o person_n be_v when_o as_o a_o personal_a propriety_n or_o the_o proper_a manner_n of_o subsist_v be_v adjoin_v to_o the_o deity_n or_o one_o divine_a nature_n distinction_n of_o person_n be_v that_o which_o albeit_o every_o person_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o perfect_a god_n yet_o the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o son_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o the_o father_n alone_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o the_o father_n or_o the_o son_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n alone_o neither_o can_v they_o be_v divide_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o infiniteness_n of_o their_o most_o simple_a essence_n which_o be_v all_o one_o in_o number_n and_o the_o same_o in_o the_o father_n the_o same_o in_o the_o son_n and_o the_o same_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o that_o in_o these_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o person_n but_o unity_n in_o essence_n the_o communion_n of_o the_o person_n or_o rather_o union_n be_v that_o by_o which_o each_o one_o be_v in_o the_o rest_n and_o with_o the_o rest_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n &_o therefore_o every_o each_o one_o do_v possess_v love_n and_o glorify_v another_o and_o work_v the_o same_o thing_n joh._n 4.10_o believe_v thou_o not_o that_o i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n be_v in_o i_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o myself_o but_o the_o father_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o he_o do_v the_o work_n prov._n 8.22_o the_o lord_n have_v possess_v i_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o way_n i_o be_v before_o the_o work_n of_o old_a and_o vers_fw-la 20._o they_o be_v i_o with_o he_o as_o a_o nourisher_n and_o i_o be_v daily_o his_o delight_n rejoice_v always_o before_o he_o joh._n 1._o 1._o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o that_o word_n be_v god_n and_o chap._n 5.19_o the_o son_n can_v do_v nothing_o of_o himself_o save_o that_o he_o see_v the_o father_n do_v for_o whatsoever_o thing_n he_o do_v the_o same_o do_v the_o son_n also_o there_o be_v three_o person_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n matth._n 3.16.17_o and_o jesus_n when_o he_o be_v baptize_v come_v straight_o out_o of_o the_o water_n and_o lo_o the_o heaven_n be_v open_v unto_o he_o and_o john_n see_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n descend_v like_o a_o dove_n and_o light_v upon_o he_o and_o lo_o a_o voice_n come_v from_o heaven_n say_v this_o be_v my_o belooved_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v the_o father_n be_v a_o person_n without_o beginning_n who_o from_o all_o eternity_n beget_v the_o son_n heb._n 1.3_o who_o be_v the_o brightness_n of_o the_o glory_n and_o the_o ingrave_v form_n of_o his_o person_n psal._n 2.7_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o in_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n these_o property_n must_v be_v note_v i._o he_o that_o beget_v and_o he_o that_o be_v beget_v be_v together_o and_o not_o one_o before_o another_o in_o time_n ii_o he_o that_o beget_v do_v communicate_v with_o he_o that_o be_v beget_v not_o some_o one_o part_n but_o his_o whole_a essence_n iii_o the_o father_n beget_v the_o son_n not_o out_o of_o himself_o but_o within_o in_o himself_o the_o incommunicable_a property_n of_o the_o father_n be_v to_o be_v unbegotten_a to_o be_v a_o father_n and_o to_o beget_v he_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o action_n because_o he_o begin_v every_o action_n of_o himself_o effect_v it_o by_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1._o cor._n 8.6_o yet_o unto_o we_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n which_o be_v the_o father_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o in_o he_o and_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o by_o he_o rom._n 11._o ●6_n for_o of_o he_o and_o through_o he_o and_o for_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n the_o other_o two_o person_n have_v the_o godhead_n or_o the_o whole_a divine_a essence_n of_o the_o father_n by_o communication_n namely_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o son_n be_v the_o second_o person_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n from_o all_o eternity_n heb._n 1.5_o for_o unto_o which_o of_o the_o angel_n say_v be_v at_o any_o time_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n beget_v i_o thou_o col._n 1.15_o who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n the_o first_o bear_v of_o every_o creature_n joh._n 1.14_o and_o we_o see_v the_o glory_n thereof_o as_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o the_o father_n rom._n 8.32_o he_o who_o spare_v not_o his_o own_o son_n for_o this_o cause_n he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v send_v from_o the_o father_n joh._n 8.42_o i_o proceed_v forth_o and_o come_v from_o god_n neither_o come_v i_o of_o myself_o but_o he_o send_v i_o this_o send_v take_v not_o
that_o which_o he_o from_o his_o heart_n detest_v rom._n 7.19_o i_o do_v not_o the_o thing_n which_o i_o will_v but_o the_o evil_n which_o i_o will_v not_o that_o do_v i._n the_o four_o difference_n be_v presumptuous_a sin_v upon_o knowledge_n psal._n 19_o 13._o keep_v thy_o servant_n from_o presumptuous_a sin_n let_v they_o not_o reign_v over_o i_o hitherto_o belong_v i._o every_o sin_n commit_v with_o a_o high_a hand_n that_o be_v in_o some_o contempt_n of_o god_n numb_a 15.30_o the_o person_n that_o do_v presumptuous_o &c._n &c._n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o among_o his_o people_n because_o he_o have_v despise_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o and_o have_v break_v his_o commandment_n ii_o presumption_n of_o god_n mercy_n in_o do_v evil_a eccles._n 8.11_o because_o sentence_v against_o a_o evil_a work_n be_v not_o execute_v speedy_o therefore_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o child_n of_o man_n be_v full_o set_v in_o they_o to_o do_v evil_a rom._n 2.4_o despise_v thou_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o bountifulness_n etc._n etc._n not_o know_v that_o the_o bountifulness_n of_o god_n lead_v thou_o to_o repentance_n etc._n etc._n the_o five_o difference_n be_v to_o sin_n upon_o knowledge_n and_o set_a malice_n against_o god_n and_o to_o this_o be_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n refer_v chap._n 14._o of_o the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n hitherto_o we_o have_v entreat_v of_o sin_n wherewithal_o all_o mankind_n be_v infect_v in_o the_o next_o place_n succeed_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v threefold_a the_o first_o be_v in_o this_o life_n and_o that_o diverse_a way_n the_o first_o concern_v the_o body_n either_o in_o the_o provision_n with_o trouble_n for_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n gen._n 3._o 17._o or_o a_o proneness_n to_o disease_n matth._n 9.2_o son_n be_v of_o good_a comfort_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o joh._n 5._o 14._o behold_v thou_o be_v make_v whole_a sin_v no_o more_o lest_o a_o worse_a thing_n fall_v upon_o thou_o deut._n 28.21,22_o the_o lord_n shall_v make_v the_o pestilence_n cleave_v unto_o thou_o until_o he_o have_v consume_v thou_o from_o the_o land_n etc._n etc._n or_o shame_n of_o nakedness_n gen._n 3.7_o or_o in_o woman_n pain_n in_o childbirth_n gen._n 3._o 16._o unto_o the_o woman_n he_o say_v i_o will_v great_o increase_v thy_o sorrow_n and_o conception_n in_o sorrow_n shall_v thou_o bring_v forth_o child_n ii_o the_o soul_n be_v punish_v with_o tremble_v of_o conscience_n care_n trouble_n hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o madness_n deut._n 28.28_o the_o lord_n shall_v smite_v thou_o with_o madness_n and_o with_o blindness_n and_o with_o astony_v of_o heart_n iii_o the_o whole_a man_n be_v punish_v 1._o with_o fearful_a subjection_n to_o the_o regiment_n of_o satan_n col._n 1.13_o which_o free_v we_o from_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n and_o translate_v we_o into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o belove_a son_n heb._n 2._o 14._o he_o also_o himself_o take_v part_n with_o they_o that_o he_o may_v destroy_v through_o death_n he_o that_o have_v power_n of_o death_n that_o be_v the_o devil_n 2._o a_o separation_n from_o the_o fellowship_n of_o god_n and_o tremble_v at_o his_o presence_n eph._n 4._o 18._o have_v their_o cogitation_n darken_v and_o be_v stranger_n from_o the_o life_n of_o god_n gen._n 3._o 10._o i_o hear_v thy_o voice_n in_o the_o garden_n and_o be_v afraid_a because_o i_o be_v naked_a therefore_o i_o hide_v myself_o 3._o upon_o a_o man_n good_n diverse_a calamity_n and_o damage_n deut._n 28.29_o thou_o shall_v ever_o be_v oppess_v with_o wrong_n and_o be_v poul_v and_o no_o man_n shall_v succour_v thou_o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n to_o this_o place_n may_v be_v refer_v distinction_n of_o lordship_n and_o of_o this_o come_v a_o care_n to_o enlarge_v they_o and_o bargain_v with_o all_o manner_n of_o civil_a servitude_n 4._o the_o loss_n of_o that_o lordly_a authority_n which_o man_n have_v over_o all_o creature_n also_o their_o vanity_n which_o be_v not_o only_o a_o weaken_n but_o also_o a_o corrupt_a of_o that_o excellency_n of_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n which_o god_n at_o the_o first_o put_v into_o they_o rom._n 8.20_o 21._o the_o creature_n be_v subject_a to_o vanity_n not_o of_o it_o own_o will_n but_o by_o reason_n of_o he_o which_o have_v subdue_v it_o under_o hope_n etc._n etc._n 5._o in_o a_o man_n name_n infamy_n and_o ignominy_n sometime_o after_o his_o death_n jerem._n 24.9_o the_o second_o be_v at_o the_o last_o gasp_n namely_o death_n or_o a_o change_n like_o unto_o death_n rom._n 6.23_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n the_o three_o be_v after_o this_o life_n even_o eternal_a destruction_n from_o god_n presence_n and_o his_o exceed_a glory_n 2._o thess._n 1.9_o who_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a perdition_n from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o power_n chap._n 15._o of_o election_n and_o of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o foundation_n thereof_o predestination_n have_v two_o part_n election_n and_o reprobation_n 1._o thess._n 5.9_o god_n have_v not_o appoint_v we_o to_o wrath_n but_o to_o obtain_v salvation_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n election_n be_v god_n decree_n whereby_o on_o his_o own_o free_a will_n he_o have_v ordain_v certain_a man_n to_o salvation_n to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n eph._n 1.4_o 5_o 6._o he_o have_v choose_v we_o in_o he_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n this_o decree_n be_v that_o book_n of_o life_n wherein_o be_v write_v the_o name_n of_o the_o elect_n revel_v 20.12_o another_o book_n be_v open_v which_o be_v the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o the_o dead_a be_v judge_v of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n according_a to_o their_o work_n 2._o tim._n 2.19_o the_o foundation_n of_o god_n remain_v sure_a and_o have_v this_o seal_n the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o decree_n be_v a_o action_n by_o which_o god_n even_o as_o he_o purpose_v with_o himself_o work_v all_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o decree_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o elect._n for_o they_o who_o god_n elect_v to_o this_o end_n that_o they_o shall_v inherit_v eternal_a life_n be_v also_o elect_v to_o those_o subordinate_a mean_n whereby_o as_o by_o step_n they_o may_v attain_v this_o end_n and_o without_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o obtain_v it_o rom._n 8._o 29_o 30._o those_o which_o he_o know_v before_o he_o also_o predestinate_a to_o be_v make_v like_o to_o the_o image_n of_o his_o son_n that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o first_o bear_v among_o many_o brethren_n moreover_o who_o he_o predestinate_a they_o he_o call_v who_o he_o call_v they_o ●ee_z justify_v and_o who_o he_o justify_v they_o also_o he_o glorify_v there_o appertain_v three_o thing_n to_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o decree_n first_o the_o foundation_n second_o the_o mean_n three_o the_o degree_n the_o foundation_n be_v christ_n jesus_n call_v of_o his_o father_n from_o all_o eternity_n to_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o the_o mediator_n that_o in_o he_o all_o those_o which_o shall_v be_v save_v may_v be_v choose_v heb._n 5.5_o christ_n take_v not_o to_o himself_o this_o honour_n to_o be_v make_v the_o high_a priest_n but_o he_o that_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n beget_v i_o thou_o give_v it_o he_o etc._n etc._n esa._n 42.1_o behold_v my_o servant_n i_o will_v stay_v upon_o he_o my_o elect_a in_o who_o my_o soul_n delight_v i_o have_v put_v my_o spirit_n upon_o he_o he_o shall_v bring_v forth_o judgement_n to_o the_o gentile_n eph._n 1.4_o he_o have_v choose_v we_o in_o he_o meaning_n christ._n question_n how_o can_v christ_n be_v subordinate_a unto_o god_n election_n see_v he_o together_o with_o the_o father_n decree_v all_o thing_n answ._n christ_n as_o he_o be_v mediator_n be_v not_o subordinate_a to_o the_o very_a decree_n itself_o of_o election_n but_o to_o the_o execution_n thereof_o only_o 1._o pet._n 1.20_o christ_n be_v ordain_v before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o predestinaiion_n of_o the_o saint_n chap._n 5._o christ_n be_v predestinate_a that_o he_o may_v be_v our_o head_n in_o christ_n we_o must_v especial_o observe_v two_o thing_n his_o incarnation_n &_o his_o office_n to_o the_o work_n of_o his_o incarnation_n concur_v first_o both_o his_o nature_n second_o their_o union_n three_o their_o distinction_n christ_n first_o nature_n be_v the_o godhead_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o son_n whereby_o he_o be_v god_n phil._n 2.6_o who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n think_v it_o
son_n of_o god_n by_o this_o we_o may_v see_v that_o christ_n be_v one_o only_a son_n of_o god_n not_o two_o yet_o in_o two_o respect_n be_v he_o one_o as_o he_o be_v the_o eternal_a word_n he_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o son_n of_o the_o father_n as_o he_o be_v man_n the_o same_o son_n also_o yet_o not_o by_o nature_n or_o by_o adoption_n but_o only_o by_o personal_a union_n luk._n 1.35_o matth._n 3.17_o this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n etc._n etc._n the_o phrase_n in_o scripture_n agree_v to_o this_o union_n be_v the_o communion_n of_o property_n concern_v which_o observe_v two_o rule_n i._o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v or_o attribute_v to_o christ_n some_o be_v only_o understand_v of_o his_o divine_a nature_n as_o that_o joh._n 8.58_o before_o abraham_n be_v i_o be_o and_o that_o coloss._n 1.15_o who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n the_o first_o bear_v of_o every_o creature_n some_o again_o agree_v only_o to_o his_o humanity_n as_o bear_v suffer_v dead_a bury_v etc._n etc._n luk._n 2.52_o and_o jesus_n increase_v in_o wisdom_n and_o stature_n and_o in_o favour_n with_o god_n and_o man_n last_o other_o thing_n be_v understand_v only_o of_o both_o nature_n unite_v together_o as_o matth._n 17.5_o this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o only_o i_o be_o well_o please_v hear_v he_o eph._n 1.22_o he_o have_v make_v subject_a all_o thing_n under_o his_o foot_n and_o have_v appoint_v he_o over_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o head_n to_o the_o church_n ii_o some_o thing_n be_v speak_v of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v god_n which_o must_v be_v interpret_v according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n act._n 20.28_o to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o be_v christ_n which_o he_o according_a to_o his_o manhood_n have_v purchase_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n 1._o cor._n 2.8_o if_o they_o have_v know_v this_o they_o will_v never_o have_v crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n contrary_o some_o thing_n be_v mention_v of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n which_o only_o be_v understand_v of_o his_o divine_a nature_n joh._n 3.13_o no_o man_n ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o have_v descend_v from_o heaven_n the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n this_o be_v speak_v of_o his_o manhood_n whereas_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o only_o his_o deity_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n joh._n 6.62_o what_o if_o you_o shall_v see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n uz._n christ_n humane_a nature_n ascend_v up_o where_o he_o uz._n his_o deity_n be_v before_o last_o by_o reason_n of_o this_o union_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n be_v exalt_v above_o every_o name_n yea_o he_o be_v adore_v and_o have_v such_o a_o great_a though_o not_o infinite_a measure_n of_o gift_n as_o far_o surpass_v the_o gift_n of_o all_o saint_n and_o angel_n eph._n 1.21_o and_o set_v he_o at_o his_o right_a hand_n in_o heavenly_a place_n ●●●re_v above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o might_n and_o domination_n and_o every_o name_n that_o be_v name_v not_o in_o this_o world_n only_o but_o in_o that_o also_o that_o be_v to_o come_v heb._n 1.6_o when_o he_o bring_v his_o first_o beget_v son_n into_o the_o world_n he_o say_v and_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o col._n 2.3_o in_o who_o all_o the_o treasure_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n be_v hide_v phil._n 2.9_o 10._o therefore_o god_n exalt_v he_o on_o high_a &_o give_v he_o a_o name_n above_o all_o name_n that_o at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v namely_o worship_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o both_o of_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o thing_n in_o earth_n and_o thing_n under_o the_o earth_n chap._n 17._o of_o the_o distinction_n of_o both_o nature_n the_o distinction_n of_o both_o nature_n be_v that_o whereby_o they_o with_o their_o property_n and_o effect_n remain_v without_o composition_n mingle_v or_o conversion_n distinct_a joh._n 10.17,18_o therefore_o do_v my_o father_n love_v i_o because_o i_o lay_v down_o my_o life_n that_o i_o may_v take_v it_o again_o no_o man_n take_v it_o from_o i_o but_o i_o lay_v it_o down_o of_o myself_o i_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v it_o down_o and_o have_v power_n to_o take_v it_o again_o joh._n 13.31_o 32._o now_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n glorify_v &_o god_n be_v glorify_v in_o he_o if_o god_n be_v glorify_v in_o he_o god_n shall_v also_o glorify_v he_o in_o himself_o here_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o there_o be_v one_o will_v in_o christ_n as_o god_n another_o as_o man_n matth._n 26.39_o not_o as_o i_o will_v but_o as_o thou_o will_v this_o also_o approve_v that_o sentence_n of_o the_o chalcedon_n creed_n we_o confess_v that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o christ_n jesus_n both_o son_n lord_n only_o beget_v be_v know_v and_o preach_v to_o be_v in_o two_o nature_n without_o confusion_n mutation_n distinction_n or_o separation_n last_o hereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o christ_n when_o he_o become_v that_o which_o he_o be_v not_o namely_o man_n continue_v still_o that_o which_o he_o be_v very_o god_n chap._n 18._o of_o christ_n nativity_n and_o office_n thus_o much_o concern_v christ_n incarnation_n the_o clear_a declaration_n thereof_o be_v by_o his_o nativity_n the_o nativity_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o whereby_o mary_n a_o virgin_n do_v after_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o custom_n of_o woman_n bring_v forth_o christ_n that_o word_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n of_o david_n so_o that_o those_o be_v much_o deceive_v which_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o christ_n after_o a_o miraculous_a manner_n come_v into_o the_o world_n the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n be_v shut_v luk._n 2.23_o every_o man_n child_n which_o first_o open_v the_o womb_n shall_v be_v call_v holy_a to_o the_o lord_n the_o which_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v apply_v to_o mary_n &_o our_o saviour_n christ._n hence_o be_v it_o that_o the_o virgin_n marie_n be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o bring_v forth_o god_n albeit_o she_o be_v not_o any_o way_n mother_n of_o the_o godhead_n for_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v god_n be_v without_o mother_n and_o as_o man_n without_o father_n it_o be_v convenient_a to_o be_v think_v that_o mary_n continue_v a_o virgin_n until_o her_o die_a day_n albeit_o we_o make_v not_o this_o opinion_n any_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n i._o christ_n be_v now_o to_o depart_v the_o world_n commit_v his_o mother_n to_o the_o tuition_n and_o custody_n of_o his_o disciple_n john_n which_o it_o be_v like_a he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o she_o have_v have_v any_o child_n by_o who_o as_o custom_n be_v she_o may_v have_v be_v provide_v for_o joh._n 19_o 26._o ii_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o she_o who_o be_v with_o child_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o after_o know_v any_o man_n iii_o it_o be_v agree_v of_o by_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n christ_n be_v now_o bear_v be_v circumcise_v the_o eight_o day_n that_o he_o may_v fulfil_v all_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n and_o b●●●g_v thirty_o year_n of_o age_n he_o be_v baptize_v that_o he_o be_v public_o and_o solemn_o invest_v into_o the_o office_n of_o his_o mediatorship_n may_v take_v upon_o he_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n he_o be_v both_o circumcise_v and_o baptize_v that_o we_o may_v learn_v i._o that_o the_o whole_a efficacy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n depend_v alone_o and_o whole_o upon_o he_o ii_o that_o he_o be_v mediator_n of_o mankind_n both_o before_o and_o after_o the_o law_n as_o also_o under_o grace_n iii_o that_o he_o be_v the_o knot_n and_o bond_n of_o both_o covenant_n his_o office_n follow_v to_o the_o perfect_a accomplish_n whereof_o he_o be_v anoint_v of_o his_o father_n that_o be_v he_o be_v sufficient_o furnish_v both_o with_o gift_n and_o authority_n hebr._n 1.9_o therefore_o god_n even_o thy_o god_n anoint_v thou_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n above_o thy_o fellow_n esa._n 61.1_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o i_o therefore_o be_v anoint_v i_o joh._n 3.34_o god_n give_v he_o not_o the_o spirit_n by_o measure_n if_o any_o man_n enforce_v this_o as_o a_o reason_n that_o christ_n can_v not_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o a_o mediator_n be_v not_o the_o mean_a or_o middle_a betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n but_o the_o party_n offend_v &_o so_o one_o of_o the_o extreme_n we_o must_v know_v that_o christ_n be_v two_o way_n say_v to_o be_v the_o middle_n or_o mean_a i._o betwixt_o god_n and_o all_o man_n for_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n he_o do_v participate_v with_o both_o extreme_n ii_o betwixt_o god_n and_o the_o faithful_a only_o first_o according_a to_o his_o humanity_n whereby_o he_o receive_v the_o spirit_n without_o measure_n second_o according_a to_o his_o divine_a
he_o be_v able_a perfect_o to_o save_v they_o that_o come_v to_o god_n by_o he_o see_v he_o ever_o live_v to_o make_v intercession_n for_o they_o second_o according_a to_o his_o deity_n partly_o by_o apply_v the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n partly_o by_o make_v request_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o elect_n with_o sigh_n unspeakable_a 1._o pet._n 1.2_o elect_a according_o to_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n rom._n 8._o ●6_n the_o spirit_n help_v our_o infirmity_n for_o we_o know_v not_o what_o to_o pray_v as_o we_o ought_v but_o the_o spirit_n itself_o make_v request_n for_o we_o with_o sigh_n which_o can_v be_v express_v we_o be_v not_o therefore_o to_o imagine_v or_o surmise_v that_o christ_n prostrate_v himself_o upon_o his_o knee_n before_o his_o father_n throne_n for_o we_o neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a see_v his_o very_a presence_n before_o his_o father_n have_v in_o it_o the_o force_n of_o a_o humble_a petition_n the_o end_n of_o christ_n intercession_n be_v that_o such_o as_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o merit_n shall_v by_o this_o mean_n continue_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n now_o christ_n intercession_n preserve_v the_o elect_a in_o cover_v their_o continual_a slip_n infirmity_n and_o imperfect_a action_n by_o a_o especial_a and_o continual_a application_n of_o his_o merit_n that_o by_o this_o mean_v man_n person_n may_v remain_v just_a and_o man_n work_n acceptable_a to_o god_n 1._o joh._n 2.2_o he_o be_v a_o reconciliation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o but_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n 1._o pet._n 2.5_o you_o as_o lively_a stone_n be_v make_v a_o spiritual_a house_n and_o holy_a priesthood_n to_o offer_v up_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n acceptable_a to_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ._n revel_v 8.3,4_o and_o another_o angel_n come_v and_o stand_v before_o the_o altar_n have_v a_o golden_a censer_n and_o much_o odour_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v offer_v with_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o saint_n upon_o the_o golden_a altar_n which_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n and_o t●●_n smoke_n of_o the_o odour_n with_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n go_v up_o before_o god_n out_o of_o the_o angel_n hand_n thus_o far_o concern_v christ_n priesthood_n now_o follow_v his_o prophetical_a and_o regal_a office_n his_o prophetical_a office_n be_v that_o whereby_o he_o immediate_o from_o his_o father_n reneal_v his_o word_n and_o all_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n comprise_v in_o the_o same_o joh._n 1.18_o the_o son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o his_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v unto_o you_o joh._n 8.26_o those_o thing_n which_o i_o hear_v of_o my_o father_n i_o speak_v to_o the_o world_n deut._n 18.18_o i_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o a_o prophet_n etc._n etc._n the_o word_n be_v first_o reveal_v partly_o by_o vision_n by_o dream_n by_o speech_n partly_o by_o the_o instinct_n and_o motion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n heb._n 1.1_o at_o sundry_a time_n &_o in_o diverse_a manner_n god_n speak_v in_o old_a time_n to_o our_o father_n the_o prophet_n in_o these_o last_o day_n he_o have_v speak_v to_o we_o by_o his_o son_n 2._o pet._n 1.21_o prophecy_n come_v not_o in_o old_a time_n by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n speak_v as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o like_a be_v do_v ordinary_o only_a by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n where_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v inward_o illuminate_v the_o understanding_n luk._n 24.45_o then_o open_v he_o their_o understanding_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n v_o 21.15_o i_o i_o will_v give_v you_o a_o month_n and_o wisdom_n where_o against_o all_o your_o adversary_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o speak_v nor_o resist_v act._n 16.14_o who_o heart_n the_o lord_n open_v that_o she_o attend_v on_o the_o thing_n that_o paul_n speak_v for_o this_o cause_n christ_n be_v call_v the_o doctor_n lawegiver_n and_o counsellor_n of_o his_o church_n matth._n 23.10_o be_v you_o not_o call_v ●_z for_o one_o be_v your_o doctor_n jesus_n christ._n jam._n 4.12_o there_o be_v one_o lawgiver_n which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o to_o destroy_v esa._n 9.6_o he_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n counsellor_n etc._n etc._n yea_o he_o be_v the_o apostle_n of_o our_o profession_n heb._n 3.1_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n malac._n 3.1_o and_o the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n heb._n 9.15_o therefore_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o expound_v the_o scripture_n only_o belong_v to_o christ_n and_o the_o church_n have_v only_o the_o ministry_n of_o judgement_n and_o interpretation_n commit_v unto_o she_o christ_n regal_a office_n be_v that_o whereby_o he_o distribute_v his_o gift_n and_o dispose_v all_o thing_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o elect_a psal._n 2._o and_o 110.31.2_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o my_o lord_n sit_z t●ou_fw-mi on_o my_o right_a hand_n till_o i_o make_v thy_o enemy_n thy_o footstool_n the_o execution_n of_o christ_n regal_a office_n comprehend_v his_o exaltation_n christ_n exaltation_n be_v that_o by_o which_o he_o after_o his_o humiliation_n be_v by_o little_a and_o little_o exalt_v to_o glory_n and_o that_o in_o sundry_a respect_n according_a to_o both_o his_o nature_n the_o exaltation_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n be_v a_o apparent_a declaration_n of_o his_o divine_a property_n in_o his_o humane_a nature_n without_o the_o least_o alteration_n thereof_o rom._n 1._o 4._o declare_v mighty_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n touch_v the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n by_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a act._n 2.36_o god_n have_v make_v he_o both_o lord_n &_o christ_n who_o you_o have_v crucify_v the_o exaltation_n of_o his_o humanity_n be_v the_o put_v off_o from_o he_o his_o servile_a condition_n and_o all_o infirmity_n and_o the_o put_v on_o of_o such_o habitual_a gift_n which_o albeit_o they_o be_v create_v and_o finite_a yet_o they_o have_v so_o great_a and_o so_o marvelous_a perfection_n as_o possible_o can_v be_v ascribe_v to_o any_o creature_n the_o gift_n of_o his_o mind_n be_v wisdom_n knowledge_n joy_n and_o other_o unspeakable_a virtue_n of_o his_o body_n immortality_n strength_n agility_n brightness_n philip._n 3.21_o who_o shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n that_o it_o may_v be_v fashion_v like_o unto_o his_o glorious_a body_n math._n 17.2_o he_o be_v transfigure_v before_o they_o &_o his_o face_n do_v shine_v as_o the_o sun_n and_o his_o clothes_n be_v as_o white_a as_o the_o light_n heb._n 1.9_o god_n even_o thy_o god_n have_v anoint_v the_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n above_o thy_o fellow_n eph._n 1.20.22_o christ_n body_n although_o it_o be_v thus_o glorify_v yet_o be_v it_o still_o of_o a_o solid_a substance_n compass_v about_o visible_a palpable_a and_o shall_v perpetual_o remain_v in_o some_o certain_a place_n luk._n 24.39_o behold_v my_o hand_n and_o my_o foot_n it_o be_v even_o i_o touch_v i_o and_o see_v a_o spirit_n have_v no_o flesh_n and_o bone_n as_o you_o see_v i_o have_v there_o be_v three_o degree_n of_o christ_n exaltation_n i._o his_o resurrection_n wherein_o by_o his_o divine_a power_n he_o subdue_v death_n and_o raise_v up_o himself_o to_o eternal_a life_n 2._o cor._n 13.4_o though_o he_o be_v crucify_v concern_v his_o infirmity_n yet_o live_v he_o through_o the_o power_n of_o god_n matth._n 28.6_o he_o be_v not_o here_o for_o he_o be_v rise_v as_o he_o say_v come_v see_v the_o place_n where_o the_o lord_n be_v lay_v the_o end_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n be_v to_o show_v that_o his_o satisfaction_n by_o his_o passion_n and_o death_n be_v full_o absolute_a for_o one_o only_a sin_n will_v have_v detai●ed_v the_o mediator_n under_o the_o dominion_n of_o death_n though_o he_o have_v full_o satisfy_v for_o all_o the_o rest_n 1._o cor._n 15.17_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o raise_v your_o faith_n be_v in_o vain_a you_o be_v yet_o in_o your_o sin_n rom._n 4.25_o who_o be_v deliver_v to_o death_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o be_v rise_v again_o for_o our_o justification_n ii_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n which_o be_v a_o true_a local_a and_o visible_a translation_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n from_o earth_n into_o the_o high_a heaven_n of_o the_o bless_a by_o the_o virtue_n &_o power_n of_o his_o deity_n act._n 1.9_o when_o he_o have_v speak_v these_o thing_n while_o they_o behold_v he_o be_v take_v up_o for_o a_o cloud_n take_v he_o up_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n and_o while_o they_o look_v steadfast_o towards_o heaven_n as_o he_o go_v behold_v two_o man_n stand_v by_o they_o in_o white_a apparel_n which_o also_o say_v you_o man_n of_o galilee_n why_o stand_v you_o gaze_v into_o heaven_n this_o jesus_n which_o be_v take_v up_o from_o you_o into_o heaven_n
shall_v come_v as_o you_o have_v see_v he_o go_v into_o heaven_n eph._n 4.10_o he_o ascend_v far_o above_o all_o the_o heaven_n the_o end_n of_o christ_n ascension_n be_v that_o he_o may_v prepare_v a_o place_n for_o the_o faithful_a give_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o their_o eternal_a glory_n joh._n 14.2_o in_o my_o father_n house_n be_v many_o mansion_n if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o i_o will_v have_v tell_v you_o i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o c._n 16.7_o if_o i_o go_v not_o away_o the_o comforter_n will_v not_o come_v unto_o you_o but_o if_o i_o depart_v i_o will_v send_v he_o unto_o you_o iii_o his_o sit_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n which_o metaphorical_o signify_v that_o christ_n have_v in_o the_o high_a heaven_n actual_o all_o glory_n power_n &_o dominion_n heb._n 1.3_o by_o himself_o he_o have_v purge_v our_o sin_n and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n in_o the_o high_a place_n psal._n 110.1_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o my_o lord_n sit_v thou_o at_o my_o right_a hand_n till_o i_o make_v thy_o enemy_n thy_o footstool_n 1._o cor._n 15.25_o he_o must_v reign_v till_o he_o have_v put_v all_o his_o enemy_n under_o his_o foot_n act._n 7.55_o he_o be_v full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n look_v steadfast_o into_o heaven_n and_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o jesus_n stand_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n mark_n 20.22_o his_o regal_a office_n have_v two_o part_n the_o first_o be_v his_o regiment_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n part_v whereof_o be_v in_o heaven_n part_n upon_o the_o earth_n namely_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n he_o exercise_v two_o prerogative_n royal_a the_o first_o be_v to_o make_v law_n james_n 4.12_o there_o be_v one_o lawgiver_n which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o to_o destroy_v the_o second_o be_v to_o ordain_v his_o minister_n eph._n 4.11_o he_o give_v some_o to_o be_v apostle_n other_o prophet_n other_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n etc._n etc._n 1._o cor._n 12.28_o god_n have_v ordain_v some_o in_o the_o church_n as_o first_o apostle_n second_o prophet_n three_o teacher_n then_o they_o that_o do_v miracle_n after_o that_o the_o gift_n of_o heal_a helper_n governor_n diversity_n of_o tongue_n christ_n government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v either_o his_o collection_n of_o it_o out_o of_o the_o world_n or_o conservation_n be_v collect_v eph._n 4.12_o psal._n 10._o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o regal_a office_n be_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n col._n 1.13_o who_o have_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n psal._n 2.9_o thou_o shall_v crus●_n they_o with_o a_o sceptre_n of_o iron_n and_o break_v they_o in_o piece_n like_o a_o potter_n vessel_n luk._n 19.27_o those_o my_o enemy_n that_o will_v not_o that_o i_o shall_v reign_v over_o they_o bring_v hither_o and_o slay_v they_o before_o i_o the_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n be_v the_o whole_a company_n of_o christ_n enemy_n the_o prince_n of_o this_o kingdom_n and_o of_o all_o the_o member_n thereof_o be_v the_o devil_n eph._n 2.2_o you_o walk_v once_o according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o world_n and_o after_o the_o prince_n that_o rule_v in_o the_o air_n enen_fw-la the_o prince_n that_o now_o work_v in_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n 2._o cor._n 4.4_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v blind_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o infidel_n 2._o cor._n 6.15_o what_o concord_n have_v christ_n with_o belial_n or_o what_o part_n have_v the_o believer_n with_o the_o infidel_n the_o member_n of_o this_o kingdom_n and_o subject_n to_o satan_n be_v his_o angel_n and_o unbeliever_n among_o who_o the_o principal_a member_n be_v atheist_n who_o say_v in_o their_o heart_n there_o be_v no_o god_n psal._n 14.1_o and_o magician_n who_o bargain_n with_o the_o devil_n to_o accomplish_v their_o desire_n 1._o sam._n 28.7_o psal._n 58.5_o idolatour_n who_o either_o ador●_n false_a god_n or_o the_o true_a god_n in_o a_o idol_n 1._o cor._n 10.7.20_o turk_n and_o jew_n be_v of_o this_o bunch_n so_o be_v heretic_n who_o be_v such_o as_o err_v with_o pertinacie_n in_o the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n 2._o tim._n 2._o 18._o apostate_n or_o revolter_n from_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n heb._n 6.6_o false_a christ_n who_o b●are_v man_n in_o hand_n they_o be_v true_a christ_n matth._n 24.26_o there_o be_v many_o such_o about_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n his_o first_o come_n as_o josephus_n witness_v book_n 20._o of_o jewish_a antiquity_n the_o 11,12_o &_o 14._o chapter_n last_o that_o antichtist_n who_o as_o it_o be_v now_o apparent_a can_v be_v none_o other_o but_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n 2._o thess._n 2.3_o let_v no_o man_n deceive_v you_o by_o any_o mean_n for_o that_o day_n shall_v not_o come_v except_o there_o come_v a_o depart_a first_o and_o that_o that_o man_n of_o sin_n be_v disclose_v even_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n which_o be_v a_o adversary_n and_o exalt_v himself_o against_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o that_o be_v worship_v so_o that_o he_o do_v sit_v as_o god_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v god_n revel_v 13.11_o and_o i_o behold_v another_o beast_n come_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n which_o have_v two_o horn_n like_o the_o lamb_n but_o he_o speak_v like_o the_o dragon_n and_o he_o do_v all_o that_o the_o first_o beast_n can_v do_v before_o he_o and_o he_o cause_v the_o earth_n and_o they_o that_o dwell_v threin_o to_o worship_v the_o beast_n who_o deadly_a wound_n be_v heal_v there_o be_v then_o first_o antichristes_n at_o rome_n when_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o will_v be_v entitle_v universal_a or_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o then_o be_v they_o complete_a when_o they_o together_o with_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n usurp_v civil_a authority_n after_o that_o christ_n have_v subdue_v all_o his_o enemy_n these_o two_o thing_n shall_v ensue_v i._n the_o surrender_n over_o of_o his_o kingdom_n to_o god_n the_o father_n as_o concern_v the_o regiment_n for_o at_o that_o time_n shall_v cease_v both_o that_o civil_a regiment_n and_o spiritual_a policy_n consist_v in_o word_n and_o spirit_n together_o ii_o the_o subjection_n of_o christ_n only_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o humanity_n the_o which_o then_o be_v when_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v most_o full_o manifest_v his_o majesty_n which_o before_o be_v obscure_v by_o the_o flesh_n as_o a_o veil_n so_o that_o the_o same_o flesh_n remain_v both_o glorious_a &_o unite_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v by_o infinite_a degree_n appear_v inferior_a we_o may_v not_o therefore_o imagine_v that_o the_o subjection_n of_o christ_n consist_v in_o diminish_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o humanity_n but_o in_o manifest_v most_o full_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o word_n chap._n 19_o concern_v the_o outward_a mean_n of_o execute_v the_o decree_n of_o election_n and_o of_o the_o decalogue_n after_o the_o foundation_n of_o election_n which_o have_v hitherto_o be_v deliver_v it_o follow_v that_o we_o shall_v entreat_v of_o the_o outward_a mean_n of_o the_o same_o the_o mean_n be_v god_n covenant_n and_o the_o seal_n thereof_o god_n covenant_n be_v his_o contract_n with_o man_n concern_v life_n eternal_a upon_o certain_a condition_n this_o covenant_n consist_v of_o two_o part_n god_n promise_v to_o man_n man_n promise_n to_o god_n god_n promise_n to_o man_n be_v that_o whereby_o he_o bind_v himself_o to_o man_n to_o be_v his_o god_n if_o he_o break_v not_o the_o condition_n man_n promise_n to_o god_n be_v that_o whereby_o he_o vow_v his_o allegiance_n unto_o his_o lo●d_n and_o to_o perform_v the_o condition_n between_o they_o again_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o this_o covenant_n the_o covenant_n of_o work_n &_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n jerm_n 31_o 3●.42.43_n behold_v the_o day_n come_v say_v the_o lord_n that_o i_o will_v make_v a_o now_o cou●nant_a with_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o with_o the_o house_n of_o judah_n not_o accord_v to_o the_o covenant_n i_o make_v with_o their_o father_n when_o i_o tocke_z they_o ●y_a the_o hand_n to_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n the_o which_o my_o covenant_n they_o break_v although_o i_o be_v a_o husband_n to_o they_o say_v the_o lord_n but_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o covenant_n that_o i_o will_v make_v with_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n after_o those_o day_n say_v the_o lord_n i_o will_v put_v my_o law_n in_o their_o inward_a part_n and_o write_v it_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n the_o covenant_n of_o work_n be_v god_n covenant_n make_v with_o condition_n of_o perfect_a obedience_n and_o
day_n wherein_o my_o mother_n bear_v i_o be_v bless_v v_o 13._o curse_a be_v the_o man_n that_o show_v my_o father_n say_v a_o man_n child_n be_v born●_n unto_o thou_o and_o comfort_v he_o v_o 18._o how_o be_v it_o that_o i_o come_v forth_o of_o the_o womb_n to_o see_v labour_n &_o sorrow_n that_o my_o day_n shall_v be_v consume_v with_o shame_n ii_o tempt_v of_o god_n when_o such_o as_o distrust_v or_o rather_o contemn_v he_o seek_v sign_n of_o god_n truth_n and_o power_n matth._n 4.7_o thou_o shall_v not_o tempt_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n 1._o corinth_n 10.6_o neither_o let_v we_o tempt_v god_n as_o they_o tempt_v he_o and_o be_v destroy_v by_o serpent_n v_o 10._o neither_o murmur_v you_o as_o some_o of_o they_o murmur_v and_o be_v destroy_v of_o the_o destroyer_n iii_o desperation_n gen._n 4._o 13._o my_o iniquity_n be_v great_a than_o can_v be_v pardon_v 1._o thes._n 4._o 13._o sorrow_n you_o not_o as_o they_o which_o have_v no_o hope_n iv._o doubtfulness_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n benefit_n present_a or_o to_o come_v psal._n 116.11_o i_o say_v in_o my_o haste_n all_o man_n be_v liar_n ii_o confidence_n in_o creature_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o their_o strength_n as_o jerem._n 17.5_o curse_a be_v the_o man_n that_o have_v his_o confidence_n in_o man_n and_o make_v flesh_n his_o arm_n but_o his_o heart_n slide_v from_o the_o lord_n or_o riches_n matth._n 6.24_o you_o can_v serve_v god_n and_o riches_n eph._n 5.5_o no_o covetous_a person_n which_o be_v a_o idolater_n have_v inheritance_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o god_n or_o defence_a place_n jere._n 49._o 16._o thy_o fear_n &_o the_o pride_n of_o thy_o heart_n have_v deceive_v thou_o that_o thou_o dwell_v in_o the_o cleft_n of_o the_o rock_n and_o keep_v the_o height_n of_o the_o hill_n though_o thou_o shall_v make_v thy_o nest_n as_o high_a as_o the_o eagle_n i_o will_v bring_v thou_o down_o from_o thence_o say_v the_o lord_n or_o pleasure_n and_o dainty_n to_o such_o their_o belly_n be_v their_o god_n phil._n 3._o 14._o or_o in_o physician_n 2._o chron._n 6._o 12._o and_o asa_n in_o the_o nine_o and_o thirty_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n be_v disease_v in_o his_o foot_n and_o his_o disease_n be_v extreme_a yet_o he_o seek_v not_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o disease_n but_o to_o the_o physician_n brief_o to_o this_o place_n principal_o may_v be_v adjoin_v that_o devilish_a confidence_n which_o magician_n and_o all_o such_o as_o take_v advice_n at_o they_o do_v put_v in_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o work_n levit._n 20._o 6._o if_o any_o turn_n after_o such_o as_o work_v with_o spirit_n and_o after_o soothsayer_n to_o go_v a_o whore_v after_o they_o then_o will_v i_o set_v my_o face_n against_o that_o person_n and_o will_v cut_v he_o off_o from_o among_o this_o people_n iii_o the_o love_n of_o the_o creature_n above_o the_o love_n of_o god_n math._n 10.37_o he_o that_o love_v father_n or_o mother_n more_o than_o i_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o and_o he_o that_o love_v son_n or_o daughter_n more_o than_o i_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o john_n 12._o 43._o they_o love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n more_o than_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n to_o this_o belong_v self-love_n 2._o tim._n 3.2_o iv._o hatred_n and_o contempt_n of_o god_n when_o man_n fly_v from_o god_n and_o his_o wrath_n when_o he_o punish_v offence_n rom._n 8.7_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v enmity_n with_o god_n rom._n 1._o 30._o hater_n of_o god_n doer_n of_o wrong_n v._o want_v of_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n psal._n 36.1_o wickedness_n say_v to_o the_o wicked_a man_n even_o in_o my_o heart_n that_o there_o be_v no_o fear_n of_o god_n before_o their_o eye_n vi_o fear_n of_o the_o creature_n more_o than_o the_o creator_n rev._n 21.8_o the_o fearful_a and_o unbelieved_a shall_v have_v their_o part_n in_o the_o lake_n which_o burn_v with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n matth._n 10.28_o fear_v not_o they_o which_o kill_v the_o body_n but_o fear_v he_o that_o can_v cast_v both_o body_n and_o soul_n into_o hell_n fire_n jerem._n 10.2_o be_v not_o afraid_a of_o the_o sign_n of_o heaven_n though_o the_o heathen_a be_v afraid_a of_o such_o vii_o hardness_n of_o heart_n or_o carnal_a service_n when_o a_o man_n neither_o acknowledge_v god_n judgement_n nor_o his_o own_o sin_n dream_v he_o be_v safe_a from_o god_n vengeance_n and_o such_o peril_n as_o arise_v from_o sin_n rom._n 2.5_o thou_o after_o thy_o hardness_n and_o heart_n that_o can_v not_o repent_v heap_a to_o thyself_o wrath_n against_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n luk._n 21.34_o take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o least_o at_o any_o time_n your_o heart_n be_v oppress_v with_o surfeit_v and_o drunkenness_n and_o care_n of_o this_o life_n and_o lest_o that_o day_n come_v on_o you_o as_o unaware_o these_o all_o do_v joint_o engender_v pride_n whereby_o man_n ascribe_v all_o he_o have_v that_o be_v good_a not_o to_o god_n but_o to_o his_o own_o merit_n and_o industry_n refer_v and_o dispose_v they_o whole_o unto_o his_o own_o proper_a credit_n 1._o cor._n 4.6_o that_o you_o may_v learn_v by_o we_o that_o no_o man_n presume_v above_o that_o which_o be_v write_v that_o one_o swell_v not_o against_o another_o for_o any_o man_n cause_n vers_fw-la 7._o for_o who_o separate_v thou_o or_o what_o have_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v if_o thou_o have_v receive_v it_o why_o reioyc_a thou_o as_o though_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v it_o gen._n 3.5_o god_n do_v know_v that_o when_o you_o shall_v eat_v thereof_o your_o eye_n shall_v be_v open_v and_o you_o shall_v be_v as_o god_n know_v good_a and_o evil_a the_o high_a stair_n of_o pride_n ladder_n be_v that_o fearful_a presumption_n by_o which_o many_o clime_n rash_o into_o god_n seat_n of_o majesty_n as_o if_o they_o be_v god_n act._n 12._o 22_o 23._o the_o people_n give_v a_o shout_n say_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o man_n but_o immediate_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n smite_v he_o because_o he_o give_v not_o glory_n unto_o god_n so_o that_o he_o be_v eat_v up_o of_o worm_n and_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n 2._o thess._n 2.4_o which_o be_v a_o adversary_n and_o exalt_v himself_o against_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o that_o be_v worship_v so_o that_o he_o do_v sit_v as_o god_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v god_n chap._n 21._o of_o the_o second_o commandment_n hitherto_o have_v we_o entreat_v of_o the_o first_o commandment_n teach_v we_o to_o entertain_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o to_o make_v choice_n of_o one_o only_a god_n the_o other_o three_o of_o the_o first_o table_n concern_v that_o holy_a profession_n which_o we_o must_v make_v towards_o the_o same_o god_n for_o first_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v choice_n of_o the_o true_a god_n second_o to_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o same_o god_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o god_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v the_o part_n thereof_o and_o the_o time_n appoint_v for_o this_o profession_n the_o part_n be_v two_o the_o solemn_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o glorify_v of_o he_o the_o second_o commandment_n describe_v such_o holy_a and_o solemn_a worship_n as_o be_v due_a unto_o god_n the_o word_n of_o the_o commandment_n be_v these_o thou_o shall_v make_v thou_o no_o grave_v image_n neither_o any_o similitude_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n above_o neither_o that_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n beneath_o nor_o that_o be_v in_o the_o water_n under_o the_o earth_n thou_o shall_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o they_o neither_o serve_v they_o for_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n a_o jealous_a god_n visit_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n upon_o the_o three_o generation_n and_o upon_o the_o four_o of_o they_o that_o hate_v i_o and_o show_v mercy_n unto_o thousand_o upon_o they_o that_o love_v i_o and_o keep_v my_o commandment_n the_o resolution_n thou_o shall_v not_o make_v this_n be_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o commandment_n forbid_v to_o make_v a_o idol_n now_o a_o idol_n be_v not_o only_o a_o certain_a representation_n and_o image_n of_o some_o feign_a god_n but_o also_o of_o the_o true_a jehovah_n the_o which_o may_v be_v prove_v against_o the_o papist_n by_o these_o argument_n the_o first_o be_v deut._n 4.15_o 16._o take_v therefore_o good_a heed_n unto_o yourselves_o for_o you_o see_v no_o image_n in_o the_o day_n that_o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o you_o in_o horeb_n out_o of_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o fire_n that_o you_o corrupt_v not_o yourselves_o and_o make_v you_o a_o grave_a image_n or_o representation_n of_o any_o figure_n whether_o it_o be_v the_o likeness_n of_o male_a or_o female_a out_o of_o the_o word_n utter_v by_o
by_o which_o the_o silly_a and_o ignorant_a people_n be_v notable_o delude_v as_o for_o that_o other_o part_n of_o astrology_n concern_v nativity_n revolution_n progression_n &_o direction_n of_o nativity_n as_o also_o that_o which_o concern_v election_n of_o time_n &_o the_o find_v again_o of_o thing_n lose_v it_o be_v very_o wicked_a and_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o it_o be_v of_o the_o same_o brood_n with_o implicit_a and_o close_a magic_n my_o reason_n be_v these_o i._n the_o word_n of_o god_n reckon_v astrologer_n among_o magician_n adjudge_v they_o both_o to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o punishment_n ii_o but_o the_o astrologer_n say_v he_o foretell_v many_o thing_n which_o as_o he_o say_v come_v so_o to_o pass_v be_v it_o so_o but_o how_o i_o demand_v and_o by_o what_o mean_n he_o say_v by_o art_n but_o that_o i_o deny_v for_o the_o precept_n of_o his_o art_n will_v appear_v to_o such_o as_o read_v they_o not_o with_o a_o prejudicate_a affection_n very_o ridiculous_a whence_o then_o i_o pray_v you_o do_v this_o curious_a divine_a foreshow_v the_o truth_n but_o by_o a_o inward_a &_o secret_a instinct_n from_o the_o devil_n this_o be_v augustine_n opinion_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n and_o 7._o chapt_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n if_o we_o weigh_v all_o those_o thing_n say_v he_o we_o will_v not_o without_o cause_n believe_v that_o astrologer_n when_o they_o do_v wonderful_o declare_v many_o truth_n work_v by_o some_o secret_a instinct_n of_o evil_a spirit_n which_o desire_v to_o fill_v man_n brain_n with_o erroneous_a and_o dangerous_a opinion_n of_o starry_a destiny_n and_o not_o by_o any_o art_n derive_v from_o the_o inspection_n and_o consideration_n of_o the_o horoscope_n which_o indeed_o be_v none_o xii_o popish_a consecration_n of_o water_n and_o salt_n to_o restore_v the_o mind_n unto_o health_n and_o to_o chase_v away_o devil_n the_o reform_a missal_n pag._n 96._o xiii_o to_o make_v jest_n of_o the_o scripture_n phrase_n esai_n 66.2_o i_o will_v look_v even_o to_o he_o that_o be_v poor_a and_o of_o a_o contrite_a spirit_n and_o which_o tremble_v at_o my_o word_n we_o have_v a_o example_n of_o such_o scoff_a in_o the_o tripart_n hist._n chapter_n 36._o book_n 6._o the_o heathen_a do_v grievous_o oppress_v the_o christian_n and_o inflict_v sometime_o upon_o their_o body_n corporal_a punishment_n the_o which_o when_o the_o christian_n signify_v unto_o the_o emperor_n he_o disdain_v to_o assist_v they_o and_o send_v they_o away_o with_o this_o scoff_n you_o be_v to_o suffer_v injury_n patient_o for_o so_o be_v you_o command_v of_o your_o god_n xiiii_o light_o to_o pass_v over_o god_n judgement_n which_o be_v see_v in_o the_o world_n matth._n 26.34_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o this_o night_n before_o the_o cock_n crow_n thou_o shall_v deny_v i_o thrice_o vers_fw-la 35._o peter_n say_v unto_o he_o though_o i_o shall_v die_v with_o thou_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v thou_o luk._n 13.1,2,3_o there_o be_v certain_a man_n present_a at_o the_o same_o season_n that_o show_v he_o of_o the_o galilean_n who_o blood_n pilate_n have_v mingle_v with_o their_o own_o sacrifice_n and_o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o suppose_v you_o that_o these_o galilean_n be_v great_a sinner_n than_o all_o the_o other_o galilean_n because_o they_o have_v suffer_v such_o thing_n i_o tell_v you_o nay_o but_o except_o you_o amend_v your_o life_n you_o shall_v likewise_o perish_v xv._n a_o dissolute_a conversation_n matth._n 5._o 16._o let_v your_o light_n so_o shine_v before_o man_n that_o they_o see_v your_o good_a work_n may_v glorify_v your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n 2._o sam._n 12.14_o because_o that_o by_o this_o deed_n thou_o have_v make_v the_o enemy_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o blaspheme_v the_o child_n that_o be_v bear_v unto_o thou_o shall_v sure_o die_v the_o affirmative_a part_n in_o all_o thing_n give_v god_n his_o due_a glory_n 1._o cor._n 10.13_o to_o this_o appertain_v i._o zeal_n of_o god_n glory_n above_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o numb_a 25.8_o when_o phineas_n the_o son_n of_o eleazar_n see_v it_o he_o follow_v the_o man_n of_o israel_n into_o his_o tent_n and_o thrust_v they_o both_o through_o to_o wit_n both_o the_o man_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o woman_n through_o her_o belly_n psal._n 69.22_o the_o zeal_n of_o thy_o house_n have_v eat_v i_o up_o and_o the_o reproach_n of_o the_o scornful_a have_v fall_v upon_o i_o ii_o to_o use_n god_n title_n only_o in_o serious_a affair_n and_o that_o with_o all_o reverence_n deut._n 28.58_o if_o thou_o will_v not_o keep_v and_o do_v all_o the_o word_n of_o this_o law_n that_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n and_o fear_v this_o glorious_a and_o fearful_a name_n the_o lord_n thy_o god._n rom._n 9.5_o of_o who_o be_v the_o father_n and_o of_o who_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v who_o be_v god_n over_o all_o bless_v for_o ever_o amen_n iii_o a_o holy_a commemoration_n of_o the_o creature_n whereby_o we_o in_o the_o contemplation_n and_o admiration_n of_o the_o dignity_n and_o excellency_n thereof_o yield_v a_o approbation_n when_o we_o name_v it_o and_o celebrate_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n bright_o shine_v in_o the_o same_o psal._n 64.9,10_o and_o all_o man_n shall_v see_v it_o and_o declare_v the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v understand_v what_o he_o have_v wrought_v but_o the_o righteous_a shall_v be_v glad_a in_o the_o lord_n and_o trust_v in_o he_o and_o all_o that_o be_v upright_o of_o heart_n shall_v rejoice_v luke_n 2._o 18,19_o and_o all_o they_o that_o hear_v it_o wonder_v at_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v tell_v they_o of_o the_o shepherd_n but_o marie_n keep_v all_o these_o thing_n and_o ponder_v they_o in_o her_o heart_n jerem._n 5.12_o fear_v you_o not_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n or_o will_v you_o not_o be_v afraid_a at_o my_o presence_n which_o have_v place_v the_o sand_n for_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o sea_n by_o the_o perpetual_a decree_n that_o it_o can_v pass_v it_o and_o though_o the_o wave_n thereof_o rage_n yet_o can_v they_o not_o prevail_v though_o they_o roar_v yet_o can_v they_o not_o pass_v over_o iv._o a_o oath_n in_o which_o we_o must_v regard_v 1._o how_o a_o oath_n be_v to_o be_v take_v 2._o how_o it_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v in_o take_v a_o oath_n four_o circumstance_n must_v be_v observe_v i._o the_o matter_n or_o part_n of_o a_o oath_n the_o part_n be_v in_o number_n four_o 1._o confirmation_n of_o a_o truth_n 2._o invocation_n of_o god_n alone_o as_o a_o witness_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o a_o revenger_n of_o a_o lie_n 3._o confession_n that_o god_n punish_v perjury_n when_o he_o be_v bring_v in_o as_o a_o false_a witness_n 4._o a_o obligation_n that_o we_o will_v undergo_v the_o punishment_n at_o god_n hand_n if_o we_o perform_v not_o the_o condition_n ii_o the_o form_n we_o must_v swear_v 1._o true_o lest_o we_o forswear_v 2._o just_o lest_o we_o commit_v impiety_n 3._o in_o judgement_n for_o fear_n of_o rashness_n jerem._n 4.2_o thou_o shall_v swear_v the_o lord_n live_v in_o truth_n in_o judgement_n and_o righteousness_n esa._n 48._o 1._o which_o swear_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n but_o not_o in_o truth_n nor_o in_o righteousness_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o the_o oath_n of_o drunken_a furious_a and_o frantic_a man_n also_o oath_n of_o child_n they_o do_v not_o impose_v a_o observation_n of_o they_o but_o by_o law_n be_v no_o oath_n iii_o the_o end_n namely_o to_o confirm_v some_o necessary_a truth_n in_o question_n hebr._n 6._o 16._o man_n swear_v by_o he_o that_o be_v great_a than_o themselves_o and_o a_o oath_n for_o confirmation_n be_v among_o they_o a_o end_n of_o all_o strife_n i_o call_v that_o a_o necessary_a truth_n when_o some_o doubt_n which_o must_v necessary_o be_v decide_v can_v none_o other_o way_n be_v determine_v then_o by_o a_o oath_n as_o when_o god_n glory_n our_o neighbour_n body_n or_o good_n or_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o party_n for_o who_o the_o oath_n be_v minister_v be_v necessary_o call_v into_o question_n rom._n 1.9_o god_n be_v my_o witness_n who_o i_o serve_v in_o my_o spirit_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o his_o son_n that_o without_o cease_v i_o make_v mention_n of_o you_o 2._o cor._n 1._o 23._o i_o call_v god_n for_o a_o record_n into_o my_o soul_n that_o to_o spare_v you_o i_o come_v not_o as_o yet_o unto_o corinth_n iv._o the_o diverse_a kind_n or_o sort_n of_o oath_n a_o oath_n be_v public_a or_o private_a public_a when_o the_o magistrate_n without_o any_o peril_n to_o he_o that_o swear_v do_v upon_o just_a cause_n exact_v a_o testimony_n together_o with_o a_o oath_n a_o private_a oath_n be_v which_o two_o or_o more_o take_v private_o this_o so_o
over_o the_o servant_n of_o saul_n and_o say_v i_o see_v the_o son_n of_o ishai_n when_o he_o come_v to_o nob_n to_o abimelech_n the_o son_n of_o ahitub_n 10._o who_o ask_v counsel_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o and_o give_v he_o victual_n and_o he_o give_v he_o also_o the_o sword_n of_o goliath_n the_o philistim_n of_o this_o deed_n david_n thus_o speak_v psal._n 52.1_o why_o boast_v thou_o thyself_o in_o thy_o wickedness_n o_o man_n of_o power_n the_o love_a kindness_n of_o the_o lord_n endure_v for_o ever_o 2._o thy_o tongue_n imagine_v mischief_n and_o be_v like_o a_o sharp_a razor_n that_o cut_v deceitful_o 3._o thou_o do_v love_v evil_a more_o than_o good_a and_o lie_v more_o than_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n 4._o thou_o love_v all_o word_n that_o may_v destroy_v o_o deceitful_a tongue_n viii_o to_o open_v or_o declare_v our_o neighbour_n secret_a to_o any_o man_n especial_o if_o he_o do_v it_o of_o infirmity_n mat._n 18.15_o moreover_o if_o thy_o brother_n trespass_n against_o thou_o go_v and_o tell_v he_o his_o fault_n between_o thou_o and_o he_o alone_o if_o he_o hear_v thou_o thou_o have_v win_v thy_o brother_n pro._n 11.13_o he_o that_o go_v about_o as_o a_o slanderer_n discover_v a_o secret_a but_o he_o that_o be_v of_o a_o faithful_a heart_n conceal_v a_o matter_n ix_o all_o babble_a talk_n and_o bitter_a word_n eph._n 5.3_o but_o fornication_n and_o all_o uncleanness_n let_v it_o not_o be_v once_o name_v among_o you_o 4._o neither_o filthiness_n neither_o foolish_a talk_n neither_o jest_n which_o be_v not_o comely_a but_o rather_o give_v of_o thanks_n joh._n 9.34_o they_o answer_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o be_v altogether_o bear_v in_o sin_n and_o do_v thou_o teach_v we_o so_o they_o cast_v he_o out_o this_o jest_n or_o as_o it_o be_v now_o term_v wit_n which_o aristotle_n the_o philosopher_n make_v a_o virtue_n be_v by_o paul_n the_o apostle_n account_v a_o vice_n and_o that_o not_o without_o cause_n i._o such_o quipp_n as_o sting_v other_o though_o they_o be_v a_o great_a pleasure_n for_o some_o to_o hear_v yet_o be_v they_o very_o offensive_a to_o such_o as_o be_v so_o gird_v ii_o it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o make_v christian_a both_o godliness_n and_o gravity_n to_o agree_v with_o such_o behaviour_n object_n but_o salt_n and_o tart_a speech_n be_v usull_n in_o the_o scripture_n 1._o king_n 18._o 27._o eliah_n mock_v the_o priest_n of_o baal_n esa._n 14.9_o answer_n such_o speech_n be_v not_o speak_v to_o please_v other_o but_o be_v sharp_o devounce_v against_o god_n enemy_n to_o his_o glory_n x._o flattery_n whereby_o we_o praise_v our_o neighbour_n above_o that_o we_o know_v in_o he_o prou._n 27.6_o the_o wound_n of_o a_o lover_n be_v faithful_a but_o the_o kiss_n of_o a_o enemy_n be_v to_o be_v shun_v 14._o he_o that_o praise_v his_o friend_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n rise_v early_o in_o the_o morning_n it_o shall_v be_v count_v to_o he_o as_o a_o curse_n act._n 12.22_o and_o the_o people_n give_v a_o shout_n say_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o man_n this_o be_v a_o grievous_a sin_n in_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n 1._o thess._n 2.5_o neither_o do_v we_o ever_o use_v flatter_a word_n as_o you_o know_v nor_o colour_a covetousness_n god_n be_v record_n jer._n 6.13_o for_o from_o the_o least_o of_o they_o even_o unto_o the_o great_a of_o they_o every_o one_o be_v give_v unto_o covetousness_n and_o from_o the_o prophet_n even_o unto_o the_o priest_n they_o all_o deal_n false_o 14._o they_o have_v heal_v also_o the_o hurt_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o my_o people_n with_o sweet_a word_n say_v peace_n peace_n when_o there_o be_v no_o peace_n rom._n 16.18_o for_o they_o that_o be_v such_o serve_v not_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o their_o own_o belly_n and_o with_o fair_a speech_n and_o flatter_a deceive_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o simple_a xi_o foolish_a and_o over_o confident_a boast_n prou._n 27.1_o boast_v not_o thyself_o of_o to_o morrow_n for_o thou_o know_v not_o what_o a_o day_n may_v bring_v forth_o 2._o let_v another_o praise_n thou_o and_o not_o thy_o own_o mouth_n a_o stranger_n and_o not_o thy_o own_o lip_n xii_o to_o accuse_v or_o witness_v against_o one_o false_o 1._o king_n 21.13_o naboth_n blaspheme_v god_n and_o the_o king_n the_o affirmative_a part_n preserve_v the_o good_a name_n of_o thy_o neighbour_n eccles._n 7.3_o a_o good_a name_n be_v better_a than_o a_o good_a ointment_n here_o be_v command_v i._n a_o rejoice_v for_o the_o credit_n and_o good_a estimation_n of_o thy_o neighbour_n gal._n 5.22_o but_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v love_n joy_n peace_n gentleness_n rom._n 1.8_o first_o i_o thank_v my_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n for_o you_o all_o because_o your_o faith_n be_v publish_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n ii_o willing_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o goodness_n we_o see_v in_o any_o man_n whatsoever_o and_o only_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o same_o tit._n 3.2_o that_o they_o speak_v evil_a of_o no_o man_n that_o they_o be_v no_o fighter_n but_o soft_a show_v all_o meekness_n to_o all_o man_n moreover_o we_o must_v with_o all_o desire_n receive_v and_o believe_v report_n of_o our_o neighbour_n good_a act._n 16.1_o then_o come_v he_o to_o derbe_n and_o lystra_n and_o behold_v a_o certain_a disciple_n be_v there_o name_v timotheus_n a_o woman_n son_n which_o be_v a_o jewesse_n &_o believe_v but_o his_o father_n be_v a_o grecian_a 2._o of_o who_o the_o brethren_n which_o be_v at_o lystra_n &_o iconium_n report_v well_o 3._o therefore_o paul_n will_v that_o he_o shall_v go_v forth_o with_o he_o and_o take_v and_o circumcise_v he_o notwithstanding_o this_o must_v so_o be_v perform_v of_o we_o that_o in_o no_o wise_a we_o approve_v and_o allow_v of_o the_o vice_n and_o fault_n of_o man_n 2._o chron._n 25.2_o and_o he_o do_v upright_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o not_o with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n and_o chap._n 27.2_o and_o he_o do_v upright_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n according_a to_o all_o that_o his_o father_n vzziah_n do_v save_o that_o he_o enter_v not_o into_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n &_o the_o people_n do_v yet_o corrupt_v their_o way_n iii_o to_o interpret_v a_o doubtful_a evil_n to_o the_o better_a part_n cor._n 13.5_o love_n think_v not_o evil_a 7._o it_o believe_v all_o thing_n it_o hope_v all_o thing_n gen._n 37.31_o and_o they_o take_v josephs_n coat_n and_o kill_v a_o kid_n of_o the_o goat_n and_o dip_v the_o coat_n in_o the_o blood_n 32._o so_o they_o send_v that_o particoloured_a coat_n and_o they_o bring_v it_o to_o their_o father_n and_o say_v this_o have_v we_o find_v see_v now_o whether_o it_o be_v thy_o son_n coat_n or_o no._n 33._o then_o he_o know_v it_o and_o say_v it_o be_v my_o son_n coat_n a_o wicked_a beast_n have_v devour_v he_o joseph_n be_v sure_o tear_v in_o piece_n and_o here_o observe_v the_o religion_n of_o that_o joseph_n which_o be_v betroth_v to_o mary_n who_o when_o he_o see_v that_o mary_n be_v with_o child_n be_v ready_a to_o conclude_v that_o before_o her_o betrothe_n she_o be_v with_o child_n by_o commit_v fornication_n then_o after_o by_o commit_v adultery_n mat._n 1.19_o but_o for_o all_o this_o man_n must_v not_o be_v too_o too_o credulous_a or_o light_n of_o belief_n joh._n 2.24_o but_o jesus_n do_v not_o commit_v himself_o unto_o them●_n because_o he_o know_v they_o all_o iv._n not_o to_o believe_v a_o evil_a report_n run_v abroad_o among_o the_o common_a people_n by_o the_o whisper_n of_o talebearer_n as_o it_o be_v by_o conduit_n pipe_n psal._n 15.3_o he_o that_o slander_v not_o with_o his_o tongue_n nor_o do_v evil_a to_o his_o neighbour_n nor_o receive_v a_o false_a report_n against_o his_o neighbour_n jerem._n 40.14_o and_o they_o say_v unto_o he_o know_v thou_o not_o that_o baalis_n the_o king_n of_o the_o ammonite_n have_v send_v ishmac●_n the_o son_n of_o nethaniah_n to_o slay_v thou_o but_o gedaliah_n the_o son_n of_o ahikam_n believe_v he_o not_o 16._o but_o gedaliah_n the_o son_n of_o ahikam_n say_v unto_o jonathan_n the_o son_n of_o kareah_n thou_o shall_v not_o do_v this_o thing_n for_o thou_o speak_v false_o of_o ishmael_n but_o we_o ought_v also_o to_o be_v angry_a at_o such_o whisper_n pro._n 25.23_o as_o the_o north_n wind_n drive_v away_o the_o rain_n so_o do_v a_o angry_a countenance_n the_o slander_v tongue_n v._o to_o keep_v secret_a the_o offence_n of_o our_o neighbour_n except_o it_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v reveal_v prou._n 10.12_o hatred_n stir_v up_o contention_n but_o love_n cover_v all_o trespass_n mat._n 1.19_o then_o joseph_n her_o husband_n be_v a_o just_a man_n and_o not_o willing_a to_o make_v she_o a_o public_a example_n
be_v mind_v to_o put_v she_o away_o secret_o a_o man_n will_v suppose_v that_o by_o this_o mean_n we_o shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o other_o man_n sin_n but_o we_o must_v know_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o conceal_v our_o neighbour_n imperfection_n lest_o he_o shall_v be_v provoke_v to_o offence_n yet_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n he_o must_v be_v admonish_v that_o he_o may_v amend_v gal._n 6.1_o jam._n 5.19_o brethren_n if_o any_o of_o you_o have_v err_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o some_o man_n have_v convert_v he_o 20._o let_v he_o know_v that_o he_o which_o have_v convert_v the_o sinner_n from_o go_v astray_o out_o of_o his_o way_n shall_v save_v a_o soul_n from_o death_n and_o shall_v hide_v a_o multitude_n of_o sin_n but_o if_o the_o sin_n which_o be_v conceal_v can_v thereby_o be_v take_v away_o then_o must_v we_o in_o love_n and_o charity_n declare_v the_o same_o to_o those_o which_o may_v remove_v and_o amend_v the_o same_o gen._n 37.2_o when_o joseph_n be_v seventeen_o year_n old_a he_o keep_v sheep_n with_o his_o brethren_n and_o the_o child_n be_v with_o the_o son_n of_o bilhah_n and_o with_o the_o son_n of_o zilpah_n his_o father_n wife_n and_o joseph_n tell_v unto_o their_o father_n their_o evil_a say_n 1._o cor._n 1.11_o for_o it_o have_v be_v declare_v unto_o i_o my_o brethren_n of_o you_o by_o they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o house_n of_o cloe_n that_o there_o be_v contention_n among_o you_o mat._n 18.16_o but_o if_o he_o hear_v thou_o not_o take_v with_o thou_o one_o or_o two_o that_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n every_o word_n may_v be_v confirm_v to_o get_v a_o good_a name_n and_o estimation_n among_o man_n and_o to_o keep_v the_o same_o when_o we_o have_v get_v it_o phil._n 4.8_o furthermore_o brethren_n whatsoever_o thing_n be_v true_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v honest_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v just_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v pure_a whatsoever_o thing_n pertain_v to_o love_n whatsoever_o thing_n be_v of_o good_a report_n if_o there_o be_v any_o virtue_n if_o there_o be_v any_o praise_n think_v on_o these_o thing_n a_o good_a name_n be_v get_v 1._o if_o we_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n before_o all_o thing_n do_v repent_v we_o of_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o with_o a_o earnest_a desire_n embrace_v and_o follow_v after_o righteousness_n prou._n 10.7_o the_o memorial_n of_o the_o just_a shall_v be_v bless_v but_o the_o name_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v rot_v mar._n 14.9_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o wheresoever_o this_o gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n this_o also_o that_o she_o have_v do_v shall_v be_v speak_v of_o in_o remembrance_n of_o she_o 2._o we_o must_v have_v a_o care_n both_o to_o judge_v and_o speak_v well_o of_o other_o mat._n 7.2_o with_o what_o judgement_n you_o judge_v you_o shall_v be_v judge_v eccl._n 7.23_o give_v not_o thy_o heart_n also_o to_o all_o the_o word_n that_o man_n speak_v lest_o thou_o do_v hear_v thy_o servant_n curse_v thou_o 24._o for_o oftentimes_o also_o thy_o heart_n knoweth●_n that_o thou_o likewise_o have_v curse_v other_o 3._o we_o must_v abstain_v from_o all_o kind_n of_o wickedness_n for_o one_o only_a vice_n or_o sin_n do_v obscure_a and_o darken_v a_o man_n good_a name_n eccles._n 10.1_o dead_a fly_v cause_n to_o stink_n and_o putrify_v the_o ointment_n of_o the_o apothecary_n so_o do_v a_o little_a folly_n he_o that_o be_v in_o estimation_n for_o wisdom_n and_o for_o glory_n 4._o we_o must_v in_o all_o thing_n earnest_o seek_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n only_o and_o not_o our_o own_o matth._n 6.5_o and_o when_o thou_o praie_v be_v not_o as_o the_o hypocrite_n for_o they_o love_v to_o stand_v and_o pray_v in_o the_o synagogue_n and_o in_o the_o corner_n of_o the_o street_n because_o they_o will_v be_v see_v of_o man_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you●_n they_o have_v their_o reward_n 6._o but_o when_o thou_o praie_v enter_v into_o thy_o chamber_n and_o when_o thou_o have_v shut_v thy_o door_n pray_v unto_o thy_o father_n which_o be_v in_o secret_a and_o thy_o father_n which_o see_v in_o secret_a shall_v reward_v thou_o open_o but_o if●_n when_o we_o seek_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n honest_a and_o godly_a man_n do_v praise_n and_o testify_v well_o of_o we_o we_o must_v not_o despise_v this_o their_o testimony_n and_o commendation_n &_o although_o they_o never_o praise_v we_o nor_o testify_v of_o we_o at_o all_o yet_o must_v we_o take_v it_o in_o good_a part_n 2._o cor._n 1.12_o for_o our_o rejoice_n be_v this_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n that_o in_o simplicity_n and_o godly_a pureness_n and_o not_o in_o fleshly_a wisdom_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o have_v have_v our_o conversation_n in_o the_o world_n &_o most_o of_o all_o to_o you_o ward_v and_o chap._n 10.13_o but_o we_o will_v not_o rejoice_v of_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o within_o our_o measure_n but_o according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o line_n whereof_o god_n have_v distribute_v to_o we_o a_o measure_n to_o attain_v even_o unto_o you_o psal._n 16.5_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o portion_n of_o my_o inheritance_n and_o of_o my_o cup_n thou_o shall_v maintain_v my_o lot_n 6._o the_o line_n be_v fall_v unto_o i_o in_o pleasant_a place_n yea_o i_o have_v a_o fair_a heritage_n 1._o cor._n 1.31_o he_o that_o rejoice_v let_v he_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n chap._n 29._o of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n the_o ten_o commandment_n concern_v concupiscence_n commit_v against_o our_o neighbour_n the_o word_n be_v these_o thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v thy_o neighbour_n house_n thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v thy_o neighbour_n wife_n nor_o his_o servant_n nor_o his_o maid_n nor_o his_o ox_n nor_o his_o ass_n nor_o any_o thing_n thy_o neighbour_n have_v the_o resolution_n covet_v the_o cogitation_n or_o motion_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v of_o three_o sort_n the_o first_o be_v some_o glance_a or_o sudden_a thought_n suggest_v to_o the_o mind_n by_o satan_n which_o sudden_o vanish_v away_o and_o be_v not_o receive_v of_o the_o mind_n this_o be_v no_o sin_n for_o it_o be_v in_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v tempt_v by_o the_o devil_n matth._n 4._o v._n 1._o the_o second_o be_v a_o more_o permanent_a thought_n or_o motion_n the_o which_o as_o it_o be_v tickle_v &_o inveigle_v the_o mind_n with_o some_o inward_a joy_n the_o three_o be_v a_o cogitation_n draw_v from_o the_o will_n and_o affection_n full_a assent_n to_o sin_n we_o be_v to_o understand_v this_o commandment_n of_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o motion_n only_o not_o of_o the_o first_o or_o of_o the_o last_o to_o which_o the_o five_o former_a commandment_n do_v belong_v now_o then_o to_o covet_v be_v to_o think_v inward_o and_o also_o to_o desire_v any_o thing_n whereby_o our_o neighbour_n may_v be_v hinder_v albeit_o there_o ensue_v no_o assent_n of_o the_o will_n to_o commit_v that_o evil_n for_o the_o very_a philosopher_n condemn_v covetousness_n of_o the_o very_a heart_n and_o civilian_n disallow_v a_o purpose_n only_o to_o do_v evil_a if_o it_o be_v conjoin_v with_o a_o manifest_a deliberation_n and_o as_o for_o the_o concupiscence_n in_o this_o place_n forbid_v we_o may_v well_o think_v it_o be_v more_o close_a and_o secret_a because_o s._n paul_n a_o doctor_n of_o the_o law_n be_v altogether_o ignorant_a of_o it_o rom._n 7.7_o i_o have_v not_o know_v lust_n except_o the_o law_n have_v say_v thou_o shall_v not_o lust_n again_o if_o that_o concupiscence_n immediate_o go_v before_o the_o consent_n be_v not_o prohibit_v in_o this_o place_n there_o must_v be_v a_o great_a confu●ion_n in_o the_o decalogue_n for_o the_o seven_o commandment_n forbid_v some_o kind_n of_o covet_v of_o our_o neighbour_n wife_n hou●e_o the_o commandment_n be_v illustrate_v by_o a_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o distribution_n of_o the_o object_n of_o concupiscence_n whence_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o only_o evil_a concupiscence_n be_v condemn_v in_o this_o place_n coloss._n 3.5_o for_o there_o be_v a_o good_a concupiscence_n or_o desire_n as_o of_o meat_n and_o drink_v and_o that_o of_o the_o spirit_n gal._n 5.17_o the_o spirit_n lust_v against_o the_o flesh_n the_o negative_a part_n thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v that_o which_o be_v thy_o neighbour_n here_o be_v prohibit_v i._o concupiscence_n itself_o namely_o original_a corruption_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v hurtful_a to_o our_o neighbour_n jam._n 1.14_o ii_o each_o corrupt_a and_o sudden_a cogitation_n &_o passion_n of_o the_o heart_n spring_v out_o of_o the_o bitter_a root_n of_o concupiscence_n gal._n 5.17_o the_o flesh_n lust_v against_o the_o spirit_n luk._n 10.27_o thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n with_o all_o thy_o soul_n to_o this_o place_n appertain_v satan_n suggestion_n if_o after_o the_o first_o offer_v it_o
rejoice_v i_o in_o my_o suffering_n for_o you_o and_o fulfil_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o affliction_n of_o christ_n in_o my_o flesh_n for_o his_o body_n sake_n which_o be_v the_o church_n we_o ought_v to_o take_v up_o this_o cross_n willing_o even_o with_o both_o hand_n when_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o lay_v it_o upon_o us._n and_o after_o we_o have_v take_v it_o up_o we_o must_v bear_v it_o with_o patience_n and_o perseverance_n col._n 1.11_o strengthen_v with_o all_o might_n through_o his_o glorious_a power_n unto_o all_o patience_n &_o long_o suffer_v with_o joyfulness_n luk._n 21.19_o possess_v your_o soul_n with_o patience_n the_o preseruative_n of_o patience_n be_v i._o strength_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n phil._n 4._o 13._o i_o be_o able_a to_o do_v all_o thing_n through_o the_o help_n of_o christ_n which_o strengthen_v i_o phil._n 1._o 20._o it_o be_v give_v to_o you_o for_o christ_n that_o not_o only_o you_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o but_o also_o suffer_v for_o his_o sake_n ii_o a_o holy_a meditation_n which_o be_v manifold_a i._o that_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o faithful_a come_v not_o by_o chance_n but_o by_o the_o counsel_n &_o providence_n of_o god_n which_o dispose_v all_o thing_n in_o a_o most_o excellent_a sort_n gen._n 45.4,5_o it_o be_v god_n that_o send_v joseph_n into_o egypt_n 2._o sam._n 16._o 10._o the_o lord_n bid_v shemei_n curse_n david_n psal._n 119.71_o it_o be_v good_a for_o i_o that_o i_o be_v afflict_v that_o i_o may_v learn_v thy_o statute_n hence_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o affliction_n to_o the_o godly_a be_v inevitable_a act._n 14.21_o by_o many_o affliction_n you_o must_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n mat._n 7.14_o the_o gate_n be_v straight_o and_o the_o way_n narrow_a that_o lead_v unto_o life_n and_o few_o there_o be_v that_o find_v it_o joh._n 16.20_o in_o the_o world_n you_o shall_v have_v trouble_n ii_o that_o albeit_o affliction_n be_v grievous_a yet_o be_v they_o good_a &_o profitable_a for_o they_o be_v help_n whereby_o man_n be_v humble_v for_o their_o sin_n before_o god_n obtain_v peace_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n 2._o cor._n 1.9_o we_o receive_v sentence_n of_o death_n in_o ourselves_o because_o we_o shall_v not_o trust_v in_o ourselves_o but_o in_o god_n which_o raise_v the_o dead_a isaiah_n 26._o 16._o lord_n in_o trouble_n have_v they_o visit_v thou_o they_o pour_v out_o a_o prayer_n when_o thy_o chasten_n be_v upon_o they_o hos._n 5.15_o i_o will_v go_v and_o return_v to_o my_o place_n till_o they_o acknowledge_v their_o fault_n and_o seek_v i_o in_o their_o affliction_n they_o will_v seek_v i_o diligent_o psal._n 78.34_o when_o he_o ●lue_v they_o they_o seek_v he_o and_o they_o return_v and_o they_o seek_v god_n early_o jer._n 31.18_o i_o have_v hear_v ephraim_n lament_v thus_o thou_o have_v correct_v i_o and_o i_o be_v chastise_v as_o a_o untamed_a calf_n convert_v thou_o i_o and_o i_o shall_v be_v convert_v heb._n 12_o 11●_n no_o chastisement_n for_o the_o present_a seem_v joyous_a but_o grievous_a but_o afterward_o it_o bring_v the_o quiet_a fruit_n of_o righteousness_n unto_o they_o which_o be_v thereby_o exercise_v psal._n 30.5_o weep_n may_v abide_v at_o evening_n but_o joy_n come_v in_o the_o morning_n joh._n 15.2_o every_o branch_n that_o bear_v fruit_n he_o purge_v it_o that_o it_o may_v bring_v forth_o more_o fruit_n 1._o pet._n 1.6_o wherein_o you_o rejoice_v though_o now_o for_o a_o season_n if_o need_v require_v you_o be_v in_o heaviness_n through_o many_o tentation_n 2._o cor._n 1.4_o the_o god_n of_o all_o comfort_n which_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o our_o tribulation_n that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o comfort_v they_o which_o be_v in_o any_o affliction_n by_o the_o comfort_n wherewith_o we_o ourselves_o be_v comfort_v of_o god_n rom._n 5._o 3._o we_o glory_v in_o affliction_n know_v that_o affliction_n bring_v patience_n heb._n 2._o 10._o he_o do_v consecrate_v the_o prince_n of_o their_o salvation_n through_o affliction_n we_o permit_v chirurgeon_n that_o they_o shall_v both_o bind_v we_o lie_v disease_v in_o our_o bed_n and_o fear_v we_o with_o hot_a iron_n yea_o launch_v and_o search_v our_o member_n with_o razor_n and_o last_o we_o send_v they_o away_o usual_o with_o friendly_a and_o kind_a speech_n and_o often_o with_o a_o golden_a fee_n for_o their_o thus_o handle_v us._n shall_v we_o then_o suffer_v so_o many_o thing_n of_o a_o chirurgeon_n to_o cure_v a_o bodily_a disease_n and_o will_v we_o not_o give_v god_n leave_v to_o cure_v by_o affliction_n the_o most_o fester_a disease_n of_o our_o sick_a ●oules_n by_o this_o also_o may_v we_o gather_v that_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v sign_n of_o their_o adoption_n hebr._n 12.6_o who_o the_o lord_n love_v he_o chasten_v and_o he_o scourge_v every_o son_n that_o he_o receive_v 7._o if_o you_o endure_v chastisement_n god_n offer_v himself_o unto_o you_o as_o unto_o son_n and_o that_o they_o be_v to_o they_o the_o king_n high_a way_n to_o heaven_n jam._n 1.12_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n that_o endure_v tentation_n for_o when_o he_o be_v try_v he_o shall_v receive_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o 2._o cor._n 4._o 17._o for_o our_o ●ight_a affliction_n which_o be_v but_o for_o a_o moment_n cause_v unto_o we_o a_o far_o more_o excellent_a and_o a_o eternal_a weight_n of_o glory_n iii_o that_o god_n have_v promise_v favour_n mitigation_n of_o punishment_n his_o presence_n and_o deliverance_n philip._n 1._o 29._o 1._o cor._n 10._o 13._o god_n be_v faithful_a who_o will_v not_o suffer_v you_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o measure_n but_o with_o tentation_n will_v give_v deliverance_n 2._o sam._n 7.14_o psal._n 50.15_o call_v upon_o i_o in_o time_n of_o trouble_n and_o i_o will_v deliver_v thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v glorify_v i_o psal._n 121.4_o he_o that_o keep_v israel_n will_v neither_o slumber_v nor_o sleep_n esa._n 43.2_o when_o thou_o pass_v through_o the_o water_n i_o will_v be_v with_o thou_o and_o through_o the_o flood_n that_o they_o do_v not_o overflow_v thou_o when_o thou_o walk_v through_o the_o very_a fire_n thou_o shall_v not_o be_v burn_v neither_o shall_v the_o flame_n kindle_v upon_o thou_o 3._o for_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n thy_o saviour_n iv._o that_o in_o all_o trouble_n of_o the_o faithful_a christ_n be_v a_o companion_n 1._o pet._n 4.13_o rejoice_v that_o you_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o affliction_n of_o christ._n 2._o cor._n 4._o 10._o every_o where_o we_o bear_v about_o in_o our_o body_n the_o die_a of_o christ_n that_o the_o life_n of_o jesus_n may_v also_o be_v make_v manifest_a in_o our_o body_n col._n 1.21_o v._o that_o the_o angel_n be_v ready_a to_o defend_v such_o as_o fear_v god_n psal._n 34.8.2_o king_n 6.16_o fear_v not_o there_o be_v more_o with_o we_o then_o against_o us._n chap._n 45._o of_o the_o call_n upon_o god_n thus_o much_o concern_v the_o denial_n of_o ourselves_o now_o follow_v the_o profession_n of_o christ._n in_o which_o we_o consider_v either_o christ_n himself_o or_o his_o member_n namely_o the_o faithful_a math._n 25.40_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o do_v it_o to_o one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o my_o brethren_n you_o do_v it_o unto_o i_o that_o profession_n which_o direct_o concern_v christ_n be_v either_o continual_a or_o only_o in_o the_o time_n of_o danger_n continual_a be_v the_o call_n upon_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o aught_o ever_o to_o be_v perform_v of_o we_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n jesus_n our_o mediator_n 1._o cor._n 1.2_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v at_o corinthus_n to_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v in_o christ_n jesus_n in_o every_o place_n both_o their_o lord_n and_o we_o act._n 9_o 14._o he_o have_v authority_n from_o the_o high_a priest_n to_o bind_v all_o that_o call_v upon_o thy_o name_n col._n 3._o 17._o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v do_v in_o word_n or_o in_o deed_n do_v it_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n give_v thanks_n to_o god_n and_o the_o father_n by_o he_o the_o call_n upon_o god_n name_n be_v by_o prayer_n or_o thanksgiving_n phil._n 4._o 6._o in_o all_o thing_n let_v your_o request_n be_v show_v unto_o god_n in_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n with_o give_v of_o thanks_n prayer_n have_v two_o part_n petition_v and_o assent_v mark_n 11.24_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o whatsoever_o you_o desire_v when_o you_o pray_v believe_v that_o you_o shall_v have_v it_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v unto_o you_o petition_n be_v the_o first_o part_n of_o prayer_n whereby_o we_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n ask_v his_o help_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o such_o necessary_n as_o we_o
noise_n like_v to_o that_o of_o chariot_n wheel_n sudden_o pass_v away_o and_o the_o element_n with_o the_o earth_n and_o all_o therein_o shall_v be_v dissolve_v with_o fire_n 2._o pet._n 3._o 12._o l●●king_v for_o and_o h●●sting_v unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o day_n of_o god_n by_o which_o the_o heaven_n be_v 〈◊〉_d shall_v be_v dissolve_v and_o the_o element_n shall_v melt_v with_o heat_n 13._o 〈…〉_z new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n wherein_o d_o 〈…〉_z ousness_n at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o as_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v come_v to_o pass_v first_o 〈◊〉_d sound_n of_o the_o last_o trumpet_n shall_v be_v hear_v sound_v by_o the_o archangel_n lord_n and_o christ_n shall_v come_v sudden_o in_o the_o cloud_n with_o power_n and_o glory_n and_o a_o great_a train_n of_o angel_n iii_o now_o at_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n the_o elect_n which_o be_v dead_a shall_v arise_v with_o their_o body_n and_o those_o very_a body_n which_o be_v turn_v to_o dust_n and_o one_o part_n rend_v from_o another_o shall_v by_o the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o god_n be_v restore_v and_o the_o soul_n of_o they_o shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o be_v bring_v again_o into_o those_o body_n as_o for_o 43._o they_o which_o then_o shall_v be_v alive_a they_o shall_v be_v change_v in_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n and_o this_o mutation_n shall_v be_v in_o stead_n of_o death_n and_o at_o that_o time_n the_o body_n shall_v receive_v their_o full_a redemption_n etc._n and_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o elect_n shall_v be_v make_v like_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o therefore_o shall_v be_v spiritual_a immortal_a glorious_a and_o free_a from_o all_o infirmity_n iv._o last_v of_o all_o when_o they_o be_v all_o convent_v before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o christ_n he_o will_v forthwith_o place_v the_o elect_n sever_v from_o the_o reprobate_n and_o take_v up_o into_o the_o air_n at_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o to_o they_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n will_v he_o pronounce_v this_o sentence_n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n possess_v the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n matth._n 25.33_o he_o shall_v set_v the_o sheep_n on_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o the_o goat_n on_o the_o left_a 1._o thess._n 4._o 17._o reu._n 20._o 12._o whosoever_o be_v not_o find_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o lake_n of_o fire_n chap._n 50._o of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o elect_a after_o judgement_n the_o last_o judgement_n be_v once_o finish_v the_o elect_n shall_v enjoy_v immediate_o blessedness_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n blessedness_n be_v that_o whereby_o god_n himself_o be_v all_o in_o all_o his_o elect._n 1._o cor._n 15._o 28._o when_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v subdue_v to_o he_o then_o shall_v the_o son_n also_o himself_o be_v subject_a unto_o he_o that_o do_v subdue_v all_o thing_n under_o he_o that_o god_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o and_o it_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o good_a work_n not_o because_o work_n can_v merit_v but_o by_o reason_n of_o god_n favour_n who_o thus_o accept_v work_n and_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n impute_v to_o the_o elect._n rom._n 6.23_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n but_o eternal_a life_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n 2._o tim._n 4._o 8._o reu._n 22._o 12._o behold_v i_o come_v short_o and_o my_o reward_n be_v with_o i_o to_o give_v every_o man_n according_a as_o his_o work_n shall_v be_v blessedness_n have_v two_o part_n eternal_a life_n and_o perfect_a glory_n eternal_a life_n be_v that_o fellowship_n with_o god_n you_o whereby_o god_n himself_o be_v through_o the_o lamb_n christ_n life_n unto_o the_o elect._n for_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o elect_n shall_v not_o need_v meat_n drink_n sleep_n air_n heat_n cold_a physic_n apparel_n or_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n b_o but_o in_o place_n of_o all_o these_o shall_v they_o have_v in_o they_o god_n spirit_n by_o which_o immediate_o they_o shall_v be_v quicken_v for_o ever_o perfect_a glory_n be_v that_o wonderful_a excellency_n of_o the_o elect_n whereby_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o a_o far_o better_a estate_n than_o any_o heart_n can_v wish_v this_o glory_n consist_v in_o three_o point_n i._o in_o that_o they_o shall_v still_o behold_v the_o face_n of_o god_n which_o be_v his_o glory_n and_o majesty_n revel_v 22.4_o and_o they_o shall_v see_v his_o face_n and_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v in_o their_o forehead_n psal._n 17.15_o i_o will_v behold_v thy_o face_n in_o righteousness_n and_o when_o i_o awake_v i_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o thy_o anger_n ii_o in_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v most_o like_a to_o christ_n namely_o just_a holy_a incorruptible_a glorious_a honourable_a excellent_a beautiful_a strong_a mighty_a and_o nimble_a 1._o joh._n 3.2_o dear_o belove_v now_o be_v we_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v and_o we_o know_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o for_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v phil._n 3.21_o who_o shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n that_o it_o may_v be_v fashion_v like_o unto_o his_o glorious_a body_n according_a to_o the_o work_n whereby_o he_o be_v able_a even_o to_o subdue_v all_o thing_n to_o himself_o iii_o they_o shall_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n yea_o the_o new_a heaven_n and_o new_a earth_n shall_v be_v their_o inheritance_n 1._o pet._n 1.4_o god_n have_v beget_v you_o to_o a_o inheritance_n immortal_a &_o undefiled_a and_o that_o fade_v not_o away_o reserve_v in_o heaven_n for_o you_o mat._n 25.34_o then_o shall_v the_o king_n say_v to_o they_o on_o his_o right_a hand_n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n possess_v a_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v reu._n 5.10_o thou_o have_v make_v we_o unto_o our_o god_n king_n and_o priest_n and_o we_o shall_v reign_v on_o the_o earth_n revel_v 21.7_o he_o that_o overcom_v shall_v inherit_v all_o thing_n and_o i_o will_v be_v his_o god_n &_o he_o shall_v be_v my_o son_n the_o fruit_n that_o come_v from_o both_o these_o part_n of_o blessedness_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n eternal_a joy_n and_o the_o perfect_a service_n of_o god_n psal._n 16.11_o thou_o will_v show_v i_o the_o path_n of_o life_n in_o thy_o presence_n be_v the_o fullness_n of_o joy_n and_o at_o thy_o right_a hand_n there_o be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o psal._n 36.8_o they_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o fatness_n of_o thy_o house_n and_o thou_o shall_v give_v they_o drink_v out_o of_o the_o river_n of_o thy_o pleasure_n 9_o for_o with_o thou_o be_v the_o well_o of_o life_n and_o in_o thy_o light_n shall_v we_o see_v light_n the_o part_n of_o god_n service_n be_v praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n revel_v 21.3_o and_o i_o hear_v a_o great_a voice_n out_o of_o heaven_n say_v behold_v the_o tabernacle_n of_o god_n be_v with_o man_n and_o he_o will_v dwell_v with_o they_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v his_o people_n and_o god_n himself_o shall_v be_v their_o god_n with_o they_o chap._n 5.12_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n worthy_a be_v the_o lamb_n that_o be_v kill_v to_o receive_v power_n and_o riches_n and_o wisdom_n and_o strength_n and_o honour_n and_o glory_n and_o praise_n etc._n etc._n 13._o chap._n 11.17_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n which_o sit_v before_o god_n on_o their_o seat_n fall_v upon_o their_o face_n and_o worship_v god_n say_v we_o give_v thou_o thanks_o lord_n god_n almighty_a which_o art_n and_o which_o be_v it_o and_o which_o art_n to_o come_v for_o thou_o have_v receive_v thy_o great_a might_n and_o have_v obtain_v thy_o kingdom_n the_o manner_n of_o perform_v this_o service_n be_v to_o worship_n god_n by_o god_n himself_o immediate_o in_o heaven_n there_o shall_v neither_o be_v temple_n ceremony_n nor_o sacrament_n but_o all_o these_o want_n shall_v god_n himself_o supply_v together_o with_o the_o lamb_n that_o be_v christ._n revel_v 21.22_o i_o see_v no_o temple_n therein_o for_o the_o lord_n god_n almighty_a and_o the_o lamb_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o it_o this_o service_n shall_v be_v daily_o and_o without_o intermission_n revel_v 7.15_o they_o be_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n and_o serve_v he_o day_n and_o night_n in_o his_o temple_n a_o corollary_n or_o the_o last_o conclusion_n thus_o god_n in_o save_v the_o elect_n do_v clear_o set_v forth_o his_o justice_n and_o mercy_n his_o justice_n in_o that_o he_o punish_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o elect_a in_o his_o son_n own_o person_n his_o
adam_n 1._o cor._n 15.45_o the_o conclusion_n if_o we_o shall_v grant_v this_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a then_o must_v we_o needs_o allow_v of_o these_o absurdity_n in_o divinity_n which_o follow_v i._o that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o and_o each_o singular_a man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o withal_o he_o will_v have_v some_o ordain_v to_o hatred_n and_o perdition_n or_o that_o in_o regard_n of_o god_n all_o man_n be_v elect_v and_o redeem_v but_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o event_n many_o perish_v ii_o the_o guilt_n of_o adam_n sin_n must_v not_o be_v impute_v to_o any_o one_o of_o his_o posterity_n because_o that_o god_n have_v mercy_n of_o all_o general_o in_o christ_n do_v take_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o reconciliation_n all_o mankind_n now_o if_o but_o the_o guiltiness_n of_o adam_n fall_n be_v take_v away_o the_o punishment_n forthwith_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o punishment_n and_o corruption_n itself_o be_v by_o little_a and_o little_o abolish_v in_o all_o man_n chap._n 55._o of_o the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o reprobate_n when_o they_o be_v dead_a the_o death_n of_o the_o reprobate_n be_v a_o separation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o body_n that_o for_o a_o time_n it_o may_v lie_v dead_a in_o the_o earth_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o it_o may_v feel_v the_o torment_n of_o hell_n even_o until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n at_o which_o time_n the_o whole_a man_n shall_v be_v cast_v into_o the_o most_o terrible_a and_o fearful_a fire_n of_o hell_n 1._o pet._n 3.19_o by_o the_o which_o he_o also_o go_v and_o preach_v unto_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o prison_n luk._n 8._o 2._o pet._n 2.4_o for_o if_o god_n spare_v not_o the_o angel_n that_o sin_v but_o cast_v they_o down_o into_o hell_n and_o deliver_v they_o into_o chain_n of_o darkness_n to_o be_v keep_v unto_o damnation_n etc._n etc._n the_o reprobate_n when_o they_o die_v do_v become_v without_o sense_n and_o astonish_v like_a unto_o a_o stone_n or_o else_o they_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o a_o terrible_a horror_n of_o conscience_n and_o despair_v of_o their_o salvation_n as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o gulf_n of_o the_o sea_n over_o turn_v they_o 1._o sam._n 25.37_o then_o in_o the_o morning_n when_o the_o wine_n be_v go_v out_o of_o nabal_n his_o wife_n tell_v he_o those_o word_n and_o his_o heart_n die_v within_o he_o and_o he_o be_v like_o a_o stone_n 38._o and_o about_o ten_o day_n after_o the_o lord_n smite_v nabal_n that_o he_o die_v mat._n 27.5_o and_o when_o he_o have_v cast_v down_o the_o silver_n piece_n in_o the_o temple_n he_o depart_v and_o go_v and_o hang_v himself_o chap._n 56._o of_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o reprobate_n at_o the_o last_o judgement_n in_o the_o last_o judgement_n at_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n the_o live_a be_v strike_v with_o horror_n and_o fear_n shall_v be_v change_v in_o a_o moment_n the_o dead_a shall_v rise_v again_o to_o condemnation_n both_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a shall_v then_o have_v immortal_a body_n but_o without_o glory_n and_o they_o stand_v upon_o the_o earth_n at_o the_o left_a hand_n of_o christ_n the_o judge_n shall_v hear_v the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n depart_v from_o i_o you_o curse_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n joh._n 5.29_o and_o they_o shall_v come_v forth_o that_o have_v do_v good_a unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o life_n but_o they_o that_o have_v do_v evil_a unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o condemnation_n matth._n 25._o 41._o 1._o thess._n 4._o 16._o for_o the_o lord_n himself_o shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n with_o a_o shout_n and_o with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n and_o with_o the_o trumpet_n of_o god_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o christ_n shall_v rise_v first_o 17._o then_o shall_v we_o which_o live_v and_o remain_v be_v catch_v up_o with_o they_o also_o in_o the_o cloud_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n and_o so_o shall_v we_o be_v ever_o with_o the_o lord_n chap._n 57_o of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o reprobate_n in_o hell_n after_o that_o the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n be_v pronounce_v then_o follow_v everlasting_a death_n whereof_o this_o be_v the_o estate_n i._o the_o reprobate_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o presence_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n ii_o they_o be_v punish_v with_o eternal_a confusion_n &_o most_o bitter_a reproach_n because_o all_o their_o secret_a wickedness_n and_o sin_n be_v reveal_v 2._o thess._n 1.9_o which_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a perdition_n from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o from_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o power_n math._n 5.8_o bless_a be_v the_o pure_a in_o heart_n for_o they_o shall_v see_v god_n 1._o joh._n 2.28_o and_o now_o little_a child_n abide_v in_o he_o that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o may_v be_v bold_a and_o not_o be_v ashamed_a before_o he_o at_o his_o come_n iii_o they_o have_v fellowship_n with_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n math._n 25.41_o iv._o they_o be_v whole_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n torment_v with_o a_o incredible_a horror_n and_o exceed_v great_a anguish_n through_o the_o sense_n and_o feel_n of_o god_n wrath_n pour_v out_o upon_o they_o for_o ever_o esai_n 66._o 24._o and_o they_o shall_v go_v forth_o and_o look_v upon_o the_o carcase_n of_o man_n that_o have_v transgress_v against_o i_o for_o their_o worm_n shall_v not_o die_v neither_o shall_v their_o fire_n be_v quench_v and_o they_o shall_v be_v a_o abhor_v unto_o all_o flesh_n hereupon_o be_v the_o punishment_n of_o those_o that_o be_v condemn_v call_v hell_n fire_n a_o worm_n weep_v and_o gnash_v of_o tooth_n utter_a darkness_n etc._n etc._n rev._n 21.8_o but_o the_o fearful_a and_o unbelieved_a and_o the_o abominable_a and_o murderer_n and_o whoremonger_n and_o sorcerer_n and_o idolater_n and_o all_o liar_n shall_v have_v their_o part_n in_o the_o lake_n which_o burn_v with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n which_o be_v the_o second_o death_n math._n 13.42_o and_o shall_v cast_v they_o into_o a_o furnace_n of_o fire_n ther●_n shall_v be_v weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n esai_n 66._o 24._o a_o corollary_n and_o this_o be_v the_o full_a execution_n of_o god_n decree_n of_o reprobation_n whereby_o appear_v the_o great_a justice_n of_o god_n in_o punish_v sin_n from_o whence_o also_o come_v god_n glory_n which_o he_o propound_v to_o himself_o as_o the_o last_o &_o chief_a end_n in_o all_o these_o thing_n therefore_o let_v every_o christian_a propound_v the_o same_o end_n unto_o himself_o rom._n 9.14_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v then_o be_v there_o unrighteousness_n with_o god_n god_n forbid_v 15._o for_o he_o say_v to_o moses_n i_o will_v have_v mercy_n on_o he_o to_o who_o i_o will_v show_v mercy_n and_o will_v have_v compassion_n on_o he_o on_o who_o i_o will_v have_v compassion_n 16._o so_o then_o it_o be_v not_o in_o he_o that_o will_v nor_o in_o he_o that_o run_v but_o in_o god_n that_o show_v mercy_n 17._o for_o the_o scripture_n say_v unto_o pharaoh_n for_o this_o same_o purpose_n have_v i_o stir_v thou_o up_o that_o i_o may_v show_v my_o power_n in_o thou_o and_o that_o my_o name_n may_v be_v declare_v throughout_o all_o the_o earth_n 1._o cor._n 10.31_o whether_o therefore_o you_o eat_v or_o drink_v or_o whatsoever_o you_o do_v do_v all_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n chap._n 58._o of_o the_o application_n of_o predestination_n the_o right_n apply_v of_o predestination_n to_o the_o person_n of_o man_n be_v very_o necessary_a and_o it_o have_v two_o part_n the_o first_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o particular_a predestination_n and_o the_o second_o be_v the_o use_n of_o it_o the_o judgement_n and_o discern_v of_o a_o man_n own_o predestination_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o mean_n of_o these_o rule_n which_o follow_v i._o the_o elect_a alone_a and_o all_o they_o that_o be_v elect_v not_o only_o may_v be_v but_o also_o in_o god_n good_a time_n be_v sure_a of_o election_n in_o christ_n to_o eternal_a life_n 1._o corinth_n 2.12_o 2._o cor._n 13.5_o ii_o they_o have_v not_o this_o knowledge_n from_o the_o first_o cause_n of_o election_n but_o rather_o from_o the_o last_o effect_n thereof_o and_o they_o be_v especial_o two_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o the_o work_n of_o sanctification_n 2._o pet._n 1._o 10._o roman_n 8.16_o iii_o if_o any_o doubt_n of_o this_o testimony_n it_o will_v appear_v unto_o they_o whether_o it_o come_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n or_o their_o own_o carnal_a presumption_n first_o by_o a_o full_a persuasion_n which_o they_o shall_v have_v for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o bare_o say_v it_o but_o persuade_v such_o that_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n the_o which_o the_o flesh_n can_v not_o in_o any_o
to_o make_v all_o grace_n to_o abound_v towards_o they_o 9.7,8_o where_o also_o this_o duty_n be_v teach_v we_o that_o see_v god_n be_v omnipotent_a and_o therefore_o able_a to_o make_v we_o abound_v therefore_o we_o must_v give_v cheerful_o to_o our_o poor_a brethren_n which_o want_v four_o whereas_o there_o be_v many_o in_o every_o place_n which_o have_v live_v long_o in_o their_o sin_n even_o from_o their_o cradle_n some_o in_o wantonness_n some_o in_o drunkenness_n some_o in_o swear_v some_o in_o idleness_n and_o such_o like_a out_o of_o this_o place_n to_o all_o such_o there_o be_v a_o good_a lesson_n namely_o that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o do_v now_o become_v new_a man_n and_o repent_v of_o all_o their_o sin_n for_o all_o their_o life_n past_a for_o mark_v what_o paul_n say_v of_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o christ_n through_o unbelief_n and_o have_v so_o continue_v in_o hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o desperate_a malice_n against_o he_o almost_o 16._o hundred_o year_n ●3_n if_o say_v he_o they_o abide_v not_o still_o in_o unbelief_n they_o may_v be_v graft_v into_o their_o olive_n again_o and_o his_o reason_n be_v this_o because_o god_n be_v able_a to_o graft_v they_o in_o again_o even_o so_o though_o we_o have_v live_v many_o year_n in_o sin_n and_o sure_o it_o be_v a_o dangerous_a and_o fearful_a case_n for_o a_o man_n to_o live_v 20.30_o or_o 40._o year_n under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n yet_o we_o must_v know_v that_o if_o we_o will_v now_o live_v a_o new_a life_n forsake_v all_o our_o sin_n and_o turn_v to_o god_n we_o may_v be_v receive_v to_o grace_n and_o be_v make_v a_o branch_n of_o the_o true_a olive_n though_o we_o have_v bear_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o wild_a olive_n all_o our_o life_n long_o but_o some_o will_v object_v that_o they_o have_v no_o hope_n of_o god_n favour_n because_o they_o have_v be_v so_o grievous_a sinner_n and_o continue_v in_o they_o so_o long_o ans._n but_o know_v it_o whosoever_o thou_o be_v god_n be_v able_a to_o graft_v thou_o in_o and_o if_o thou_o repent_v he_o will_v receive_v thou_o to_o his_o love_n and_o favour_n this_o must_v be_v observe_v of_o all_o but_o especial_o of_o such_o as_o be_v old_a in_o year_n and_o yet_o remain_v ignorant_a without_o knowledge_n they_o must_v turn_v to_o the_o lord_n by_o repentance_n otherwise_o if_o they_o continue_v still_o profane_a and_o impenitent_a they_o must_v know_v this_o that_o their_o damnation_n come_v post_n haste_n to_o meet_v they_o and_o they_o to_o it_o and_o thus_o much_o for_o the_o duty_n now_o follow_v the_o consolation_n which_o god_n church_n reap_v from_o this_o that_o god_n the_o father_n be_v omnipotent_a first_o the_o wonderful_a power_n of_o god_n serve_v to_o strengthen_v we_o in_o prayer_n unto_o god_n for_o he_o that_o will_v pray_v true_o must_v only_o pray_v for_o those_o thing_n for_o which_o he_o have_v warrant_n in_o god_n word_n all_o our_o prayer_n must_v be_v make_v in_o faith_n and_o for_o a_o man_n to_o pray_v in_o faith_n it_o be_v hard_o therefore_o a_o special_a mean_n to_o strengthen_v we_o herein_o be_v the_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o stay_v of_o the_o leper_n who_o our_o saviour_n christ_n cleanse_v ●_o lord_n say_v he_o if_o thou_o will_v thou_o can_v make_v i_o clean_o and_o in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v teach_v we_o to_o make_v six_o petition_n in_o the_o end_n he_o give_v we_o a_o reason_n or_o motive_n to_o induce_v we_o to_o stand_v upon_o and_o to_o wait_v for_o the_o benefit_n before_o crave_a in_o these_o word_n thy_o be_v the_o kingdom_n thou_o be_v the_o power_n etc._n etc._n second_o hence_o we_o learn_v this_o comfort_n that_o all_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prevail_v against_o the_o least_o member_n of_o christ._n i_o do_v not_o say_v they_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o assault_v or_o tempt_v they_o for_o that_o may_v be_v but_o they_o shall_v never_o overcome_v they_o how_o will_n some_o say_v may_v we_o be_v resolve_v of_o this_o i_o answer_v by_o reason_n of_o faith_n for_o if_o a_o christian_a man_n do_v believe_v that_o god_n the_o father_n and_o in_o christ_n his_o father_n be_v almighty_a no_o enemy_n shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o prevail_v against_o he_o ●_o so_o s._n john_n reason_v little_o child_n you_o be_v of_o god_n &_o have_v overcome_v they_o that_o be_v all_o false_a teacher_n because_o great_a be_v he_o that_o be_v in_o you_o that_o be_v christ_n jesus_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n who_o be_v god_n and_o therefore_o almighty_a than_o he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o satan_n therefore_o you_o need_v not_o to_o fear_v so_o david_n compare_v himself_o to_o a_o silly_a sheep_n and_o say_v though_o i_o shall_v walk_v through_o the_o valley_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n 23._o that_o be_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lion_n yet_o i_o will_v fear_v none_o evil_a why_o so_o because_o the_o lord_n be_v with_o he_o thy_o rod_n say_v he_o and_o thy_o staff_n comfort_v i_o thus_o much_o for_o the_o benefit_n now_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v the_o first_o person_n be_v a_o father_n as_o also_o almighty_a join_v these_o two_o together_o and_o hence_o will_v arise_v singular_a benefit_n and_o instruction_n first_o whereas_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o confess_v that_o the_o first_o person_n be_v a_o father_n almighty_a we_o and_o every_o man_n must_v learn_v to_o have_v experience_n in_o himself_o of_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o this_o almighty_a father_n why_o will_v some_o say_v that_o be_v nothing_o for_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o the_o damn_a soul_n feel_v the_o power_n of_o the_o almighty_a true_a indeed_o they_o feel_v the_o power_n of_o god_n namely_o as_o he_o be_v a_o almighty_a judge_n condemn_v they_o but_o they_o feel_v not_o the_o power_n of_o a_o almighty_a father_n this_o be_v the_o point_n whereof_o we_o must_v endeavour_n to_o have_v experience_n in_o ourselves_o 1.19_o paul_n pray_v that_o the_o god_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o father_n of_o glory_n will_v give_v unto_o the_o ephesian_n the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n to_o see_v what_o be_v the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o his_o power_n in_o they_o which_o believe_v according_a to_o the_o work_n of_o his_o mighty_a power_n which_o he_o wrought_v in_o christ._n which_o place_n must_v be_v consider_v for_o here_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v we_o have_v such_o a_o special_a manifestation_n of_o god_n power_n in_o ourselves_o like_v to_o that_o which_o he_o do_v once_o show_v forth_o in_o christ._n but_o how_o do_v christ_n see_v and_o find_v the_o power_n of_o god_n as_o he_o be_v man●_n answer_n diverse_a way_n i._o on_o the_o cross_n he_o die_v the_o first_o death_n which_o be_v the_o separation_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o he_o suffer_v the_o sorrow_n of_o the_o second_o death_n for_o in_o his_o soul_n he_o bear_v the_o whole_a wrath_n of_o god_n and_o all_o the_o pang_n of_o hell_n and_o after_o be_v bury_v and_o lay_v in_o the_o grave_n where_o death_n triumph_v over_o he_o for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o day_n now_o in_o this_o extremity_n god_n do_v show_v his_o power_n in_o that_o he_o raise_v christ_n from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o look_v as_o his_o power_n be_v manifest_v in_o christ_n the_o head_n so_o must_v it_o be_v manifest_v in_o all_o his_o member_n for_o every_o man_n have_v his_o grave_n which_o be_v natural_a sin_n and_o corruption_n which_o we_o draw_v from_o our_o first_o parent_n and_o look_v as_o a_o man_n lie_v dead_a in_o the_o grave_n and_o can_v move_v neither_o hand_n nor_o foot_n so_o every_o man_n by_o nature_n lie_v dead_a in_o sin_n now_o as_o god_n do_v show_v his_o power_n in_o raise_v christ_n from_o death_n so_o every_o one_o must_v labour_v to_o have_v this_o knowledge_n and_o experience_n in_o himself_o of_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n in_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n to_o newness_n of_o life_n for_o thus_o paul_n make_v a_o special_a request_n that_o he_o may_v know_v christ_n and_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o resurrection_n 3.10_o that_o be_v that_o he_o may_v feel_v in_o himself_o that_o power_n whereby_o christ_n be_v raise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n to_o raise_v he_o also_o from_o the_o bondage_n of_o his_o sin_n to_o a_o new_a life_n more_o and_o more_o furthermore_o when_o christ_n be_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o all_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n be_v open_a against_o he_o than_o do_v he_o vanquish_v satan_n he_o bruise_v the_o serpent_n head_n and_o as_o paul_n say_v 2.15_o he_o spoil_v principality_n and_o power_n
be_v a_o creator_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n of_o both_o which_o we_o will_v speak_v in_o order_n and_o first_o of_o the_o creation_n of_o heaven_n heaven_n in_o god_n word_n signify_v all_o that_o be_v above_o the_o earth_n for_o the_o air_n wherein_o we_o breath_n be_v call_v heaven_n and_o according_a to_o this_o acceptation_n of_o the_o word_n there_o be_v three_o heaven_n as_o paul_n say_v he_o be_v take_v up_o into_o the_o three_o heaven_n 2_o the_o first_o of_o these_o heaven_n be_v that_o space_n which_o be_v from_o the_o earth_n upwarde_o unto_o the_o firmament_n where_o the_o star_n be_v thus_o the_o bird_n which_o fly_v in_o the_o air_n between_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o star_n be_v call_v the_o fowl_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o when_o god_n send_v the_o flood_n to_o drown_v the_o old_a world_n moses_n say_v 11●_n the_o window_n of_o heaven_n be_v open_v meaning_n that_o god_n pour_v down_o rain_n from_o the_o cloud_n abundant_o for_o the_o make_n of_o a_o flood_n to_o drown_v the_o world_n the_o second_o heaven_n be_v that_o which_o contain_v the_o sun_n the_o moon_n and_o the_o star_n so_o moses_n say_v that_o god_n in_o the_o beginning_n create_v the_o sun_n the_o moon_n and_o the_o star_n and_o place_v they_o in_o the_o firmament_n of_o heaven_n 5.14_o beside_o these_o two_o heaven_n there_o be_v a_o three_o which_o be_v invisible_a and_o yet_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n hand_n and_o it_o be_v that_o glorious_a place_n where_o christ_n even_o in_o his_o manhood_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n and_o whither_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a depart_v be_v carry_v and_o place_v and_o in_o which_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v all_o the_o elect_a both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n have_v perfect_a joy_n and_o bliss_n in_o the_o glorious_a sight_n and_o presence_n of_o god_n for_o ever_o but_o for_o the_o better_a conceive_v the_o truth_n we_o be_v to_o skanne_v and_o consider_v diligent_o three_o question_n first_o whether_o this_o three_o heaven_n be_v a_o creature_n for_o many_o have_v think_v it_o be_v never_o create_v but_o be_v eternal_a with_o god_n himself_o but_o it_o be_v a_o gross_a error_n contrary_a to_o god_n word_n for_o the_o scripture_n say_v 11.10_o abraham_n look_v for_o a_o city_n mean_v the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n this_o three_o heaven_n have_v a_o foundation_n who_o builder_n and_o maker_n be_v god_n further_n if_o it_o be_v eternal_a it_o must_v either_o be_v creator_n or_o a_o creature_n but_o it_o be_v no_o creator_n for_o than_o it_o shall_v be_v god_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o creature_n but_o some_o will_v say_v the_o lord_n be_v eternal_a and_o this_o three_o heaven_n have_v always_o be_v the_o place_n of_o the_o lord_n abode_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v also_o eternal_a answer_n true_a it_o be_v indeed_o that_o god_n do_v show_v his_o glory_n and_o majesty_n in_o the_o three_o heaven_n but_o yet_o that_o can_v possible_o contain_v his_o godhead_n as_o solomon_n say_v behold_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n be_v not_o able_a to_o contain_v thou_o 8.27_o wherefore_o though_o god_n do_v manifest_v his_o eternal_a glory_n in_o this_o three_o heaven_n yet_o do_v it_o not_o follow_v that_o therefore_o this_o place_n shall_v be_v eternal_a for_o he_o need_v no_o habitation_n to_o dwell_v in_o he_o be_v every_o where_o fill_v all_o thing_n with_o his_o presence_n exclude_v from_o no_o place_n the_o second_o question_n be_v where_o this_o three_o heaven_n be_v answer_n there_o be_v some_o protestant_n say_v it_o be_v every_o where_o and_o they_o hold_v this_o opinion_n to_o maintain_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n in_o or_o about_o the_o sacrament_n but_o if_o it_o be_v every_o where_o than_o hell_n shall_v be_v in_o heaven_n which_o no_o man_n will_v say_v but_o heaven_n indeed_o be_v above_o these_o visible_a heaven_n which_o we_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n so_o the_o apostle_n say_v 10_o christ_n ascend_v on_o high_a far_o above_o all_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o it_o be_v say_v of_o steven_n that_o be_v full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o look_v up_o steadfast_o into_o the_o heaven_n and_o see_v they_o open_a and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n stand_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n 7.55.56_o three_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v why_o god_n create_v this_o three_o heaven_n answer_n god_n make_v it_o for_o this_o cause_n that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o certain_a place_n wherein_o he_o may_v make_v manifest_a his_o glory_n and_o majesty_n to_o his_o elect_a angel_n and_o man_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n it_o be_v create_v a_o thousand_o fold_n more_o glorious_a than_o the_o two_o former_a heaven_n be_v 23._o and_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v call_v paradise_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o joy_n and_o pleasure_n arise_v from_o god_n glorious_a presence_n and_o our_o saviour_n christ_n call_v it_o the_o house_n of_o god_n his_o father_n 14.2_o because_o into_o it_o must_v be_v gather_v all_o god_n child_n it_o be_v call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n because_o god_n be_v the_o king_n thereof_o and_o rule_v there_o in_o perfect_a glory_n true_a it_o be_v god_n have_v his_o kingdom_n here_o on_o earth_n but_o he_o rule_v not_o so_o full_o and_o glorious_o here_o as_o he_o ●hall_v in_o heaven_n for_o this_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n but_o that_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o glory_n where_o he_o so_o reign_v that_o he_o will_v be_v all_o in_o all_o first_o in_o christ_n &_o then_o in_o the_o elect_a both_o angel_n and_o man_n now_o follow_v the_o duty_n whereunto_o we_o be_v move_v principal_o in_o consideration_n of_o the_o make_n of_o the_o three_o heaven_n first_o if_o god_n create_v it_o especial_o for_o the_o manifestion_n of_o his_o glory_n unto_o man_n that_o at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o world_n by_o the_o fruition_n of_o god_n most_o glorious_a presence_n there_o they_o may_v have_v perfect_a joy_n and_o felicity_n we_o have_v occasion_n here_o to_o consider_v the_o wonderful_a madness_n and_o forgetfulness_n that_o reign_v every_o where_o among_o man_n which_o only_o have_v regard_n to_o the_o estate_n of_o this_o life_n and_o cast_v all_o their_o care_n on_o this_o world_n and_o never_o so_o much_o as_o once_o dream_v of_o the_o joyful_a and_o bless_a estate_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o god_n child_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n if_o a_o man_n have_v two_o houses●_n one_o but_o a_o homely_a cottage_n and_o the_o other_o a_o princely_a palace_n shall_v leave_v the_o better_a and_o take_v all_o the_o care_n and_o pain_n for_o the_o dress_n up_o of_o the_o first_o will_v not_o every_o man_n say_v he_o be_v a_o mad_a man_n yes_o undoubted_o and_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o spiritual_a madness_n that_o take_v place_n every_o where_o among_o man_n for_o god_n have_v prepare_v for_o we_o two_o house_n one_o be_v this_o our_o body_n which_o we_o bear_v about_o we_o which_o be_v a_o house_n of_o clay_n as_o job_n say_v 4.19_o we_o dwell_v in_o house_n of_o clay_n who_o foundation_n be_v dust_n which_o shall_v be_v destroy_v before_o the_o moth_n &_o as_o peter_n say_v a_o tabernacle_n or_o tent_n 1.14_o which_o we_o must_v short_o take_v down_o and_o wherein_o we_o abide_v but_o as_o pilgrim_n and_o stranger_n 2.10_o again_o the_o same_o god_n of_o his_o wonderful_a goodness_n have_v provide_v for_o we_o a_o second_o house_n in_o the_o three_o heaven_n wherein_o we_o must_v not_o abide_v for_o a_o time_n and_o so_o depart_v but_o for_o evermore_o enjoy_v the_o bless_a felicity_n of_o his_o glorious_a presence_n for_o all_o this_o mark_v a_o spiritual_a frenzy_n possess_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n for_o they_o employ_v all_o their_o care_n and_o industry_n for_o the_o maintain_n of_o this_o house_n of_o clay_n who_o foundation_n be_v but_o dust_n but_o for_o the_o bless_a estate_n of_o the_o second_o house_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o they_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n they_o have_v little_a regard_n or_o care_n they_o will_v both_o run_v and_o ride_v from_o place_n to_o place_n day_n and_o night_n both_o by_o sea_n and_o land_n but_o for_o what_o be_v it_o for_o the_o prepare_n of_o a_o mansion_n place_n in_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n nothing_o less_o for_o they_o will_v scarce_o go_v forth_o of_o the_o door_n to_o use_v any_o mean_n whereby_o they_o may_v come_v unto_o it_o but_o all_o their_o study_n be_v to_o patch_v up_o the_o ruin_n and_o breach_n of_o their_o earthly_a cabbine_n now_o let_v all_o man_n judge_v in_o their_o own_o conscience_n whether_o as_o i_o have_v say_v this_o be_v not_o more_o than_o senseless_a madness_n again_o the_o body_n be_v but_o a_o tabernacle_n
do_v according_a unto_o the_o will_n of_o god_n gal._n 1.8_o beside_o all_o this_o 15.7.10_o angel_n rejoice_v at_o the_o conversion_n of_o sinner_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o for_o the_o church_n sake_n they_o protect_v not_o only_o particular_a man_n but_o even_o whole_a nation_n and_o kingdom_n the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o life_n be_v to_o carry_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o godly_a into_o abraham_n bosom_n as_o they_o do_v the_o soul_n of_o lazarus_n 25.31_o and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o gather_v all_o the_o elect_n that_o they_o may_v come_v before_o christ_n and_o enter_v into_o eternal_a fruition_n of_o glory_n both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n the_o three_o and_o the_o last_o part_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n concern_v god_n enemy_n and_o it_o be_v to_o execute_v judgement_n on_o all_o wicked_a person_n and_o impenitent_a sinner_n 5._o thus_o all_o the_o first_o bear_v of_o egypt_n be_v slay_v by_o a_o angel_n when_o josua_n be_v about_o to_o sack_v jerico_fw-la a_o angel_n appear_v unto_o he_o as_o a_o captain_n with_o a_o draw_a sword_n to_o fight_v for_o israel_n when_o the_o host_n of_o zenacherib_n come_v against_o israel_n 19.15_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o one_o night_n slay_v a_o hundred_o eighty_o &_o five_o thousand_o because_o herod_n give_v not_o glory_n unto_o god_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n smite_v he_o so_o as_o he_o be_v eat_v up_o of_o louse_n and_o die_v and_o thus_o we_o see_v what_o point_v we_o be_v to_o mark_v touch_v the_o good_a angel_n now_o follow_v the_o use_n which_o we_o be_v to_o make_v in_o regard_n of_o their_o creation_n first_o whereas_o they_o be_v god_n minister_n to_o inflict_v punishment_n upon_o the_o wicked_a here_o be_v a_o special_a point_n to_o be_v learn_v of_o we_o that_o every_o man_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n take_v heed_n how_o he_o live_v and_o continue_v in_o his_o sin_n for_o the_o case_n be_v dangerous_a consider_v that_o god_n have_v army_n of_o angel_n which_o stand_v ready_a every_o where_o to_o execute_v god_n heavy_a judgement_n upon_o they_o that_o live_v thus_o when_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n have_v sin_v against_o the_o lord_n moses_n say_v they_o be_v naked_a that_o be_v open_v to_o all_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n even_o destitute_a of_o the_o guard_n of_o his_o good_a angel_n wretched_a balaam_n that_o vizard_n go_v to_o balaac_n to_o curse_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o as_o he_o go_v it_o be_v say_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n stand_v in_o his_o way_n with_o a_o draw_a sword_n &_o if_o the_o ass_n have_v not_o be_v wise_a they_o his_o master_n the_o angel_n have_v slay_v he_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o when_o we_o rush_v on_o into_o the_o practice_n of_o any_o sin_n we_o do_v as_o much_o as_o in_o we_o lie_v to_o cause_v god_n to_o send_v down_o his_o judgement_n upon_o we_o for_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o angel_n second_o we_o be_v teach_v another_o lesson_n by_o christ_n himself_o see_v say_v he_o that_o you_o despise_v not_o one_o of_o these_o little_a one_o 18.10_o now_o mark_v his_o reason_n for_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o in_o heaven_n their_o angel_n do_v always_o behold_v the_o face_n of_o my_o father_n by_o little_a one_o he_o mean_v young_a infant_n which_o be_v within_o the_o covenant_n or_o other_o which_o be_v like_a to_o young_a infant_n in_o simplicity_n and_o innocency_n of_o life_n and_o humility_n and_o christ_n will_v not_o have_v they_o to_o be_v despise_v a_o duty_n very_o needful_a to_o be_v stand_v upon_o in_o these_o time_n for_o now_o a_o day_n if_o a_o man_n carry_v but_o a_o show_n of_o humility_n of_o good_a conscience●_n and_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n he_o be_v account_v but_o a_o silly_a fellow_n he_o be_v hate_v mock_v and_o despise_v on_o every_o hand_n but_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o for_o he_o who_o god_n honour_v with_o the_o protection_n of_o his_o good_a angel_n why_o shall_v any_o mortal_a man_n despise_v and_o it_o stand_v mocker_n and_o scorner_n in_o hand_n to_o take_v heed_n who_o they_o mock_v for_o though_o man_n for_o their_o part_n put_v up_o many_o abuse_n and_o injury_n yet_o their_o angel_n may_v take_v just_a revenge_n by_o smite_v they_o with_o plague_n and_o punishment_n for_o their_o offence_n three_o see_v angle_n be_v about_o we_o and_o serve_v for_o the_o good_a of_o man_n we_o must_v do_v whatsoever_o we_o do_v in_o reverend_a and_o seemly_a manner_n as_o paul_n give_v counsel_n to_o the_o philippian_n brethren_n say_v he_o 4.8_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v true_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v honest_a just_a pure_a &_o pertain_v to_o love_n of_o good_a report_n if_o there_o be_v any_o virtue_n if_o there_o be_v any_o praise_n think_v on_o these_o thing_n many_o man_n do_v all_o their_o affair_n orderly_o for_o avoid_v shame_n but_o we_o must_v do_v the_o same_o upon_o a_o further_a ground_n namely_o because_o god_n holy_a angel_n wait_v on_o us._n and_o consider_v that_o man_n have_v care_n to_o behave_v themselves_o well_o when_o they_o be_v before_o man_n what_o a_o shame_n be_v it_o for_o a_o man_n to_o behave_v himself_o unseemly_a either_o in_o open_a or_o in_o secret_a he_o then_o be_v before_o the_o glorious_a angel_n paul_n say_v 11.10_o that_o the_o woman_n ought_v to_o have_v power_n on_o her_o head_n because_o of_o the_o angel_n that_o be_v not_o only_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n but_o god_n heavenly_a angel_n which_o daily_o wait_v upon_o his_o child_n and_o guard_v they_o in_o all_o their_o way_n four_o this_o must_v teach_v we_o modesty_n and_o humility_n for_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n be_v very_o notable_a and_o excellent_a creature_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v call_v in_o the_o psalm_n elohim_n 8.5_o god_n yet_o how_o excellent_a soever_o they_o be_v they_o abase_v themselves_o to_o become_v guardian_n and_o keeper_n unto_o sinful_a man_n now_o if_o the_o angel_n do_v so_o abase_v themselves_o then_o much_o more_o ought_v every_o man_n to_o abase_v and_o humble_v himself_o in_o modesty_n and_o humility_n before_o god_n and_o whatsoever_o our_o calling_n be_v we_o must_v not_o be_v puff_v up_o but_o be_v content_a this_o be_v a_o necessary_a duty_n for_o all_o but_o especial_o for_o those_o which_o be_v in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o prophet_n whatsoever_o their_o gift_n or_o birth_n be_v they_o must_v not_o think_v themselves_o too_o good_a for_o the_o call_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o if_o god_n have_v call_v we_o thereunto_o we_o must_v be_v content_a to_o become_v servant_n unto_o all_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n though_o the_o man_n who_o we_o teach_v be_v never_o so_o base_a or_o simple_a for_o no_o man_n do_v so_o far_o excel_v the_o base_a person_n in_o the_o world_n as_o the_o glorious_a angel_n of_o god_n do_v exceed_v the_o most_o excellent_a man_n that_o be_v therefore_o see_v they_o vouchsafe_v to_o become_v servant_n unto_o we_o we_o must_v not_o think_v ourselves_o too_o good_a to_o serve_v our_o poor_a brethren_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o duty_n now_o follow_v the_o consolation_n that_o arise_v from_o this_o that_o god_n have_v give_v his_o glorious_a angel_n to_o serve_v for_o the_o protection_n and_o safeguard_n of_o his_o church_n and_o people_n if_o man_n spiritual_a eye_n be_v open_a they_o shall_v see_v the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o all_o the_o wicked_a of_o this_o world_n to_o fight_v against_o they_o &_o if_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n of_o comfort_n in_o this_o case_n than_o our_o estate_n be_v most_o miserable_a but_o mark_v as_o god_n servant_n have_v all_o these_o wicked_a one_o to_o be_v his_o enemy_n so_o he_o have_v garrison_n of_o angel_n that_o pitch_v their_o tent_n about_o he_o and_o defend_v he_o from_o they_o all_o so_o david_n say_v 91._o he_o shall_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v over_o thou_o &_o they_o shall_v keep_v thou_o in_o all_o thy_o way_n that_o thou_o dash_v not_o thy_o foot_n against_o a_o stone_n where_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n be_v compare_v to_o nurse_n which_o carry_v little_a child_n in_o their_o arm_n feed_v they_o and_o be_v always_o ready_a at_o hand_n to_o save_v they_o from_o false_a and_o many_o other_o danger_n when_o the_o king_n of_o syria_n send_v his_o horse_n &_o chariot_n to_o take_v elisha_n the_o lord_n prophet_n because_o he_o reveal_v his_o counsel_n to_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n his_o servant_n see_v they_o round_o about_o dothan_n where_o he_o be_v and_o he_o cry_v alas_o master_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v then_o elisha_n answer_v fear_v not_o for_o they_o that_o be_v with_o we_o be_v more_o than_o they_o that_o be_v
thou_o have_v make_v he_o to_o have_v dominion_n in_o the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n and_o therefore_o god_n have_v create_v he_o in_o his_o image_n bid_v he_o rule_v over_o the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n over_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o over_o every_o beast_n that_o move_v upon_o the_o earth_n 2d_o &_o afterward_o he_o bring_v they_o all_o to_o he_o as_o to_o a_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o king_n to_o be_v name_v by_o he_o and_o answerable_o every_o creature_n in_o his_o kind_n give_v reverence_n and_o subjection_n unto_o man_n before_o his_o fall_n as_o unto_o their_o lord_n and_o king_n where_o by_o the_o way_n we_o must_v remember_v that_o when_o we_o see_v any_o creature_n that_o be_v hurtful_a and_o noisome_a unto_o man_n and_o will_v rather_o devour_v then_o obey_v he_o it_o must_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o our_o sin_n for_o by_o creation_n we_o be_v make_v lord_n and_o king_n over_o all_o creature_n and_o they_o dare_v not_o but_o reverence_n and_o obey_v we_o but_o the_o rebellion_n of_o man_n unto_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o rebellion_n of_o the_o creature_n unto_o us._n the_o three_o part_n of_o man_n dignity_n by_o creation_n be_v that_o before_o his_o fall_n he_o have_v a_o wonderful_a beauty_n and_o majesty_n above_o all_o creature_n in_o his_o body_n whereupon_o david_n say_v the_o lord_n have_v crown_v he_o with_o glory_n and_o worship_n 8._o and_o in_o the_o renew_v of_o the_o covenant_n with_o noah_n god_n say_v 9.2_o that_o the_o dread_n and_o fear_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v upon_o all_o creature_n which_o now_o though_o it_o be_v but_o small_a yet_o do_v it_o plain_o show_v what_o be_v the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n of_o man_n person_n at_o the_o first_o the_o four_o dignity_n of_o man_n estate_n in_o innocence_n be_v that_o his_o labour_n be_v without_o pain_n or_o weariness_n if_o he_o have_v never_o fall_v he_o shall_v have_v labour_v in_o the_o garden_n but_o so_o as_o he_o shall_v never_o have_v be_v weary_v therewith_o for_o when_o adam_n be_v fall_v god_n say_v in_o the_o speate_n of_o thy_o face_n shall_v thou_o eat_v thy_o bread_n now_o if_o the_o pain_n in_o labour_n come_v after_o as_o a_o curse_n upon_o man_n for_o his_o transgression_n then_o before_o his_o fall_n man_n feel_v no_o pain_n in_o his_o affair_n and_o in_o these_o four_o thing_n consist_v man_n dignity_n which_o he_o have_v in_o the_o creation_n now_o in_o the_o three_o follow_v man_n calling_n before_o his_o fall_n which_o be_v twofold_a i._o particular_a ii_o general_n man_n particular_a calling_n be_v to_o come_v into_o the_o garden_n of_o eden_n to_o keep_v it_o and_o to_o dress_v the_o tree_n and_o fruit_n thereof_o this_o show_v unto_o we_o a_o good_a lesson_n that_o every_o man_n must_v have_v a_o particular_a call_n wherein_o he_o ought_v to_o walk_v and_o therefore_o such_o as_o spend_v their_o time_n idle_o in_o game_a and_o vain_a delight_n have_v much_o to_o answer_v to_o god_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n this_o will_v not_o excuse_v a_o man_n to_o say_v they_o that_o he_o have_v land_n &_o live_v to_o maintain_v himself_o and_o therefore_o be_v to_o live_v as_o he_o list_v for_o even_o adam_n in_o his_o innocence_n have_v all_o thing_n at_o his_o will_n &_o want_v nothing_o yet_o even_o then_o god_n employ_v he_o in_o a_o call_n therefore_o none_o must_v be_v exempt_v every_o man_n both_o high_a &_o low_o must_v walk_v in_o his_o proper_a call_n adans_n general_a call_n be_v to_o worship_v his_o creator_n to_o which_o he_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o right_n of_o creation_n consider_v the_o moral_a law_n be_v write_v in_o his_o heart_n by_o nature_n which_o be_v signify_v in_o the_o decalogue_n where_o the_o lord_n require_v worship_n and_o obedience_n of_o his_o people_n because_o he_o be_v jehovah_n 10.2_o that_o be_v one_o which_o have_v be_v in_o himself_o and_o give_v be_v to_o all_o man_n by_o creation_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o this_o point_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v three_o thing_n i._o the_o place_n where_o adam_n do_v worship_n ii_o the_o time_n iii_o the_o sacrament_n for_o the_o first_o god_n ever_o since_o the_o beginning_n have_v a_o place_n where_o he_o will_v be_v worship_v and_o it_o be_v call_v god_n house_n which_o then_o be_v the_o garden_n of_o eden_n 28.17_o for_o it_o be_v unto_o adam_n a_o place_n appoint_v by_o god_n for_o his_o worship_n as_o church-assembly_n be_v unto_o we_o where_o also_o the_o lord_n at_o some_o time_n do_v in_o a_o special_a manner_n show_v himself_o unto_o his_o creature_n touch_v the_o time_n of_o god_n worship_n it_o be_v the_o seven_o day_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o creation_n the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o here_o we_o must_v note_v that_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o sabbath_n be_v moral_a some_o indeed_o do_v plead_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o ceremony_n yet_o false_o for_o it_o be_v ordain_v before_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n at_o which_o time_n ceremony_n signify_v sanctification_n have_v no_o place_n nay_o mark_v further_o adam_n in_o his_o innocence_n be_v not_o clog_v with_o sin_n as_o we_o be_v and_o yet_o then_o he_o have_v a_o set_a sabbath_n to_o worship_n god_n his_o creator_n and_o therefore_o much_o more_o need_n have_v every_o one_o of_o we_o of_o a_o sabbath_n day_n wherein_o we_o may_v sever_v ourselves_o from_o the_o work_n of_o our_o calling_n and_o the_o work_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n and_o godly_a meditation_n of_o our_o creation_n this_o point_n must_v be_v learn_v of_o we_o for_o when_o no_o occasion_n be_v offer_v of_o business_n than_o man_n will_v formal_o seem_v to_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n but_o if_o there_o come_v occasion_n of_o break_v the_o sabbath_n as_o traffic_v game_n and_o vain_a show_n than_o sabbath_n farewell_n man_n will_v have_v their_o pleasure_n let_v they_o worship_n god_n that_o will_n but_o let_v we_o remember_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n that_o whosoever_o continue_v in_o the_o breach_n of_o this_o law_n be_v moral_a god_n will_v no_o less_o power_n forth_o his_o punishment_n upon_o they_o then_o for_o the_o breach_n of_o any_o other_o commandment_n the_o consideration_n whereof_o must_v move_v every_o man_n to_o a_o reverend_a sanctify_a of_o the_o lord_n day_n now_o for_o adam_n sacrament_n they_o be_v two_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n and_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n these_o do_v serve_v to_o exercise_n adam_n in_o obedience_n unto_o god_n the_o tree_n of_o life_n be_v to_o signify_v assurance_n of_o life_n for_o ever_o if_o he_o do_v keep_v god_n commandment_n the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a be_v a_o sacrament_n to_o show_v unto_o he_o that_o if_o he_o do_v transgress_v god_n commandment_n he_o shall_v die_v and_o it_o be_v so_o call_v because_o it_o do_v signify_v that_o if_o he_o transgress_v this_o law_n he_o shall_v have_v experience_n both_o of_o good_a and_o evil_n in_o himself_o now_o in_o the_o four_o place_n follow_v the_o end_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n which_o be_v twofold_a first_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o creature_n to_o who_o god_n may_v make_v manifest_a himself_o who_o in_o a_o special_a manner_n shall_v set_v forth_o and_o acknowledge_v his_o wisdom_n goodness_n mercy_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o of_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o they_o as_o also_o his_o providence_n in_o govern_v the_o same_o second_o god_n have_v decree_v to_o glorify_v his_o name_n in_o show_v his_o mercy_n and_o justice_n upon_o his_o creature_n hereupon_o in_o time_n creat_v man_n to_o show_v his_o mercy_n in_o the_o salvation_n of_o some_o and_o to_o show_v his_o justice_n in_o the_o just_a and_o deserve_a damnation_n of_o other_o some_o and_o therefore_o he_o have_v appoint_v the_o creation_n special_o of_o man_n to_o be_v a_o mean_n of_o manifestation_n and_o beginning_n of_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o eternal_a counsel_n thus_o much_o concern_v man_n creation_n in_o general_n the_o special_a part_n of_o man_n be_v two_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v he_o stand_v on_o these_o two_o part_n be_v this_o some_o creature_n make_v before_o he_o be_v only_o bodily_a as_o beast_n fish_n fowl_n some_o spiritual_a as_o angel_n now_o man_n be_v both_o spiritual_a in_o regard_n of_o his_o soul_n corporal_a and_o sensible_a in_o regard_n of_o his_o body_n that_o nothing_o may_v be_v want_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o nature_n if_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o man_n consist_v of_o three_o part_n body_n soul_n and_o spirit_n because_o paul_n pray_v that_o the_o thessalonian_n may_v be_v sanctify_v in_o body_n soul_n and_o
spirit_n 2d_o the_o answer_n be_v that_o the_o spirit_n signify_v the_o mind_n whereby_o man_n conceive_v and_o understand_v such_o thing_n as_o may_v be_v understand_v and_o the_o soul_n be_v there_o take_v for_o the_o will_n and_o affection_n and_o therefore_o these_o twain_o be_v not_o two_o part_n but_o only_o two_o distinct_a faculty_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o soul_n the_o body_n of_o man_n at_o the_o first_o be_v form_v by_o god_n of_o clay_n or_o of_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n not_o to_o be_v the_o grave_n of_o the_o body_n as_o plato_n say_v but_o to_o be_v a_o excellent_a and_o most_o fit_a instrument_n to_o put_v in_o execution_n the_o power_n and_o faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o howsoever_o in_o itself_o consider_v it_o be_v mortal_a because_o it_o be_v compound_v of_o contrary_a nature_n call_v element_n yet_o by_o the_o appointment_n and_o blessing_n of_o god_n in_o the_o creation_n it_o become_v immortal_a till_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n as_o for_o the_o soul_n it_o be_v no_o accidentarie_a quality_n but_o a_o spiritual_a and_o invisible_a essence_n or_o nature_n subsist_v by_o itself_o ●2_n which_o plain_o appear_v in_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n have_v be_v and_o continuance_n as_o well_o forth_o of_o the_o body_n of_o man_n as_o in_o the_o same_o and_o be_v as_o well_o subject_a to_o torment_n as_o the_o body_n be_v and_o whereas_o we_o can_v and_o do_v put_v in_o practice_n sundry_a action_n of_o life_n sense_n motion_n understanding_n we_o do_v it_o only_o by_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o soul_n hence_o arise_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v substance_n but_o the_o soul_n of_o other_o creature_n seem_v not_o to_o be_v substance_n because_o they_o have_v no_o be_v out_o of_o the_o body_n in_o which_o they_o be_v but_o rather_o they_o be_v certain_a peculiar_a quality_n arise_v of_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o body_n and_o vanish_v with_o it_o and_o it_o may_v be_v for_o this_o cause_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o the_o blood_n 9.5_o whereas_o the_o like_a be_v not_o say_v of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o though_o man_n soul_n be_v spirit_n as_o angel_n be_v yet_o a_o difference_n must_v be_v make_v for_o angel_n can_v not_o be_v unite_v with_o body_n so_o as_o both_o shall_v make_v one_o whole_a and_o entire_a person_n whereas_o man_n soul_n may_v yea_o the_o soul_n couple_v with_o the_o body_n be_v not_o only_o the_o mover_n of_o the_o body_n but_o the_o principal_a cause_n that_o make_v man_n to_o be_v a_o man_n the_o beginning_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o of_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n unless_o we_o will_v make_v every_o man_n soul_n to_o be_v god_n neither_o do_v it_o spring_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o parent_n for_o the_o soul_n can_v no_o more_o beget_v a_o soul_n than_o a_o angel_n can_v beget_v a_o angel_n and_o adam_n be_v call_v a_o live_a soul_n 10._o and_o not_o a_o quicken_a soul_n and_o earthly_a father_n be_v call_v the_o father_n of_o our_o body_n 12._o and_o not_o of_o our_o soul_n it_o remain_v therefore_o as_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v then_o create_v by_o god_n of_o nothing_o when_o they_o be_v infuse_v into_o the_o body_n and_o though_o the_o soule●_n of_o man_n have_v a_o beginning_n yet_o they_o have_v no_o end_n but_o be_v eternal_a and_o when_o they_o be_v say_v to_o die_v it_o be_v not_o because_o they_o cease_v at_o any_o time_n to_o subsist_v or_o have_v be_v in_o nature_n but_o because_o they_o cease_v to_o be_v righteous_a or_o to_o have_v fellowship_n with_o god_n whereas_o our_o body_n be_v god_n workmanship_n we_o must_v glorify_v he_o in_o our_o body_n and_o all_o the_o action_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n our_o eat_n and_o drink_v our_o live_n and_o die_v must_v be_v refer_v to_o his_o glory_n yea_o we_o must_v not_o hurt_v or_o abuse_v our_o body_n 12.1_o but_o present_v they_o as_o holy_a and_o live_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n and_o whereas_o god_n make_v we_o of_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n we_o be_v not_o to_o glory_v and_o boast_v ourselves_o but_o rather_o to_o take_v occasion_n to_o praise_v the_o great_a goodness_n of_o god_n that_o have_v vouchsafe_v to_o honour_v we_o be_v but_o dust_n and_o ash_n and_o after_o that_o man_n be_v create_v what_o be_v his_o life_n alas_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o little_a breath_n stop_v his_o mouth_n and_o his_o nostril_n and_o he_o be_v but_o a_o dead_a man_n by_o this_o we_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n to_o consider_v of_o our_o frail_a and_o uncerten_a estate_n and_o to_o lay_v aside_o all_o confidence_n in_o ourselves_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o prophet_n isaiah_n teach_v we_o to_o have_v no_o confidence_n in_o man_n 2.22_o because_o his_o breath_n be_v in_o his_o nostril_n again_o let_v we_o mark_v the_o frame_n and_o shape_n of_o man_n body_n all_o other_o creature_n go_v with_o their_o body_n and_o eye_n to_o the_o ground-ward_n but_o man_n be_v make_v to_o go_v upright_o and_o whereas_o all_o other_o creature_n have_v but_o four_o muscle_n to_o turn_v their_o eye_n round_o about_o man_n have_v a_o five_o to_o pull_v his_o eye_n up_o to_o heaven-ward_o 9_o now_o what_o do_v this_o teach_v we_o sure_o that_o howsoever_o we_o seek_v for_o other_o thing_n yet_o first_o of_o all_o and_o above_o all_o we_o shall_v seek_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o righteousness_n thereof_o and_o that_o our_o whole_a desire_n shall_v be_v set_v to_o enjoy_v the_o bless_a estate_n of_o god_n child_n in_o heaven_n second_o it_o teach_v we_o in_o receive_v god_n creature_n to_o return_v thankfulness_n unto_o god_n by_o lift_v up_o the_o heart_n to_o heaven_n for_o the_o same_o these_o be_v very_o needful_a and_o profitable_a lesson_n in_o these_o day_n for_o most_o man_n indeed_o go_v upright_o but_o look_v into_o their_o life_n and_o they_o may_v as_o well_o go_v on_o all_o four_o for_o in_o their_o conversation_n they_o set_v their_o whole_a heart_n upon_o the_o earth_n as_o the_o beast_n do_v and_o their_o eye_n upon_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n hereby_o they_o do_v abase_v themselves_o and_o deface_v their_o body_n and_o be_v man_n make_v themselves_o as_o beast_n we_o shall_v see_v great_a number_n of_o man_n that_o run_v and_o ride_v from_o place_n to_o place_n to_o provide_v for_o the_o body_n but_o to_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n where_o their_o soul_n shall_v dwell_v after_o this_o life_n in_o joy_n for_o ever_o they_o will_v not_o stir_v one_o foot_n three_o man_v body_n by_o creation_n be_v make_v a_o temple_n frame_v by_o god_n own_o hand_n for_o himself_o to_o dwell_v in_o 6.15_o therefore_o our_o duty_n be_v to_o keep_v our_o body_n pure_a and_o clean_a and_o not_o to_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v instrument_n whereby_o to_o practice_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o heart_n if_o a_o man_n have_v a_o fair_a house_n wherein_o he_o must_v entertain_v a_o prince_n and_o shall_v make_v hereof_o a_o swinestie_n or_o a_o stable_n will_v not_o all_o man_n say_v that_o he_o do_v great_o abuse_v both_o the_o house_n and_o the_o prince_n even_o so_o man_n body_n be_v at_o the_o first_o make_v a_o palace_n for_o the_o everliving_a god_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v abuse_v it_o by_o drunkenness_n swear_v lie_a fornication_n or_o any_o uncleanness_n he_o do_v make_v it_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o temple_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v a_o sty_n or_o stable_n for_o the_o devil_n for_o the_o more_o filthy_a a_o man_n body_n be_v the_o more_o fit_a it_o be_v to_o be_v a_o dwell_a place_n for_o sin_n and_o satan_n four_o man_n by_o creation_n be_v make_v a_o goodly_a creature_n in_o the_o bless_a image_n of_o god_n but_o by_o adam_n fall_n man_n lose_v the_o same_o and_o be_v now_o become_v the_o deform_a child_n of_o wrath_n our_o duty_n therefore_o be_v to_o labour_v to_o get_v again_o our_o first_o image_n and_o endeavour_v ourselves_o to_o become_v new_a creature_n if_o a_o noble_a man_n shall_v stain_v his_o blood_n by_o treason_n after_o his_o death_n the_o posterity_n will_v never_o be_v at_o rest_n till_o they_o have_v get_v away_o that_o spot_n man_n by_o adam_n fall_n be_v become_v a_o limm_n of_o the_o devil_n a_o rebel_n and_o traitor_n against_o god_n majesty_n and_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o every_o one_o of_o we_o by_o nature_n we_o be_v at_o enmity_n with_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o labour_v above_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n to_o be_v restore_v in_o christ_n to_o our_o first_o estate_n and_o perfection_n that_o
any_o of_o god_n creature_n or_o ordinance_n we_o must_v sanctify_v they_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o his_o word_n and_o by_o prayer_n the_o reason_n be_v this_o because_o he_o be_v lord_n over_o all_o and_o therefore_o from_o his_o word_n we_o must_v fetch_v direction_n to_o teach_v we_o whether_o we_o may_v use_v they_o or_o not_o and_o when_o and_o how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v use_v and_o second_o we_o must_v pray_v to_o he_o that_o he_o will_v give_v we_o liberty_n and_o grace_n to_o use_v they_o aright_o in_o holy_a manner_n also_o we_o be_v so_o to_o use_v the_o creature_n and_o ordinance_n of_o god_n as_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o our_o do_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o we_o use_v that_o which_o be_v the_o lord_n not_o our_o own_o we_o be_v but_o steward_n over_o they_o and_o we_o must_v come_v to_o a_o reckon_n for_o the_o stewardship_n have_v thou_o learning_n then_o employ_v it_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n boast_v not_o of_o it_o as_o though_o it_o be_v thou_o own_o have_v thou_o any_o other_o gift_n or_o blessing_n of_o god_n be_v it_o wisdom_n strength_n riches_n honour_n favour_n or_o whatsoever_o then_o look_v thou_o use_v it_o so_o as_o thou_o may_v be_v always_o ready_a to_o make_v a_o good_a account_n thereof_o unto_o christ._n last_o every_o one_o must_v in_o such_o manner_n lead_v his_o life_n in_o this_o world_n that_o at_o the_o day_n of_o death_n he_o may_v with_o cheerfulness_n surrender_v and_o give_v up_o his_o soul_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o lord_n and_o say_v with_o steven_n 7._o lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o soul_n for_o consider_v this_o with_o thyself_o that_o thy_o soul_n be_v none_o of_o thou_o own_o but_o he_o who_o have_v buy_v it_o with_o a_o price_n and_o therefore_o thou_o must_v so_o order_v and_o keep_v it_o as_o that_o thou_o may_v in_o good_a manner_n restore_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n at_o the_o end_n of_o thy_o life_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v borrow_v a_o thing_n of_o his_o neighbour_n and_o afterward_o hurt_v it_o and_o make_v a_o spoil_n of_o it_o he_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o bring_v it_o again_o to_o the_o owner_n in_o that_o manner_n and_o if_o he_o do_v the_o owner_n himself_o will_v not_o receive_v it_o ungodly_a man_n in_o this_o life_n do_v so_o stain_v their_o soul_n with_o sin_n that_o they_o can_v never_o be_v able_a willing_o to_o give_v they_o up_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n at_o the_o day_n of_o death_n and_o if_o they_o will_v yet_o god_n accept_v they_o not_o but_o cast_v they_o quite_o away_o we_o must_v therefore_o labour_v so_o to_o live_v in_o the_o world_n that_o with_o a_o joyful_a heart_n at_o the_o day_n of_o death_n we_o may_v commend_v our_o soul_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o lord_n christ_n jesus_n who_o give_v they_o unto_o us._n this_o be_v a_o hard_a thing_n to_o be_v do_v and_o he_o that_o will_v do_v it_o true_o must_v first_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o own_o sin_n which_o a_o man_n can_v never_o have_v without_o true_a &_o unfeigned_a faith_n and_o repentance_n wherefore_o while_o we_o have_v time_n let_v we_o purge_v and_o cleanse_v our_o soul_n and_o body_n that_o they_o may_v come_v home_o again_o to_o god_n in_o good_a plight_n and_o here_o all_o governor_n must_v be_v put_v in_o mind_n that_o they_o have_v a_o high_a lord_n that_o they_o may_v not_o oppress_v or_o deal_v hardly_o with_o their_o inferior_n this_o be_v paul_n reason_n 6.9_o you_o master_n say_v he_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n unto_o your_o servant_n put_v away_o threaten_v and_o know_v that_o even_o your_o master_n be_v also_o in_o heaven_n neither_o be_v there_o respect_n of_o person_n with_o he_o inferior_n again_o must_v remember_v to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o governor_n especial_o of_o magistrate_n for_o they_o be_v set_v over_o we_o by_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o king_n christ_n jesus_n as_o paul_n say_v ●_o let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n for_o there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n that_o be_v ordain_v be_v of_o god_n and_o again_o 6.5_o servant_n be_v obedient_a to_o your_o master_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a in_o singleness_n of_o your_o heart_n as_o unto_o christ._n the_o comfort_n which_o god_n church_n may_v reap_v hence_o be_v very_o great_a for_o if_o christ_n be_v the_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o our_o lord_n especial_o who_o he_o have_v create_v and_o redeem_v we_o need_v not_o to_o fear_v what_o the_o devil_n or_o wicked_a man_n can_v do_v unto_o us._n if_o christ_n be_v on_o our_o side_n who_o can_v be_v against_o we_o we_o need_v not_o fear_v they_o that_o can_v destroy_v the_o body_n and_o do_v no_o more_o 10.28_o but_o we_o must_v cast_v our_o fear_n on_o he_o that_o be_v lord_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o can_v cast_v both_o to_o hell_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o four_o title_n now_o follow_v christ_n incarnation_n in_o these_o word_n conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o they_o contain_v in_o they_o one_o of_o the_o most_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o godliness_n as_o paul_n say_v 3.16_o without_o controversy_n great_a be_v the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n which_o be_v god_n be_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n justify_v in_o the_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o we_o may_v proceed_v in_o order_n in_o handle_v they_o i_o will_v first_o speak_v of_o the_o incarnation_n general_o and_o then_o after_o come_v to_o the_o part_n thereof_o in_o general_n we_o be_v to_o propound_v five_o question_n the_o answer_v whereof_o will_v be_v very_o needful_a to_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o doctrine_n follow_v the_o first_o question_n be_v who_o be_v incarnate_v or_o make_v man_n answ._n the_o second_o person_n in_o trinity_n the_o son_n of_o god_n alone_o as_o it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o this_o article_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n s._n john_n say_v 1.14_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o the_o angel_n say_v 1.35_o the_o holy_a one_o which_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o paul_n say_v 2.3_o that_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o there_o be_v sundry_a reason_n why_o the_o second_o person_n shall_v rather_o be_v incarnate_a than_o any_o other_o i._o by_o who_o the_o father_n create_v all_o thing_n and_o man_n especial_o by_o he_o man_n be_v fall_v be_v to_o be_v redeem_v and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v recreated_a now_o man_n be_v at_o the_o first_o create_v of_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v redeem_v by_o he_o ii_o it_o be_v most_o convenient_a that_o he_o which_o be_v the_o essential_a image_n of_o the_o father_n shall_v take_v man_n nature_n that_o he_o may_v restore_v the_o image_n of_o god_n lose_v and_o deface_v in_o man_n 1._o but_o the_o second_o person_n be_v the_o essential_a image_n of_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o he_o alone_o must_v take_v man_n nature_n iii_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o that_o person_n which_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o we_o which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n yea_o the_o son_n of_o wrath_n shall_v again_o by_o grace_n be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n now_o the_o second_o person_n alone_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o nature_n not_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o for_o the_o father_n he_o can_v not_o be_v incarnate_a for_o to_o take_v flesh_n be_v to_o be_v send_v of_o a_o other_o but_o the_o father_n can_v not_o be_v send_v of_o any_o person_n because_o he_o be_v from_o none_o again_o if_o the_o father_n be_v incarnate_a he_o shall_v be_v father_n to_o he_o which_o be_v by_o nature_n god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o a_o creature_n namely_o the_o virgin_n marie_n which_o thing_n can_v not_o well_o stand_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v not_o be_v incarnate_v for_o then_o there_o shall_v be_v more_o son_n then_o one_o in_o the_o trinity_n namely_o the_o second_o person_n the_o son_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o three_o person_n the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o son_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n it_o may_v be_v object_v to_o the_o contrary_a on_o this_o manner_n the_o whole_a divine_a essence_n be_v incarnate_a every_o person_n in_o trinity_n be_v the_o whole_a divine_a essence_n therefore_o every_o person_n be_v incarnate_a ans._n the_o whole_a godhead_n indeed_o be_v incarnate_a yet_o not_o
they_o plenty_n of_o his_o grace_n but_o also_o admit_v they_o into_o his_o glorious_a presence_n so_o as_o they_o may_v behold_v his_o majesty_n face_n to_o face_n the_o four_o and_o last_o be_v that_o whereby_o the_o godhead_n of_o the_o son_n be_v present_a and_o dwell_v with_o and_o in_o the_o manhood_n give_v unto_o it_o in_o some_o part_n his_o own_o subsistence_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o this_o manhood_n assume_v be_v proper_a to_o the_o son_n and_o can_v not_o be_v the_o manhood_n of_o the_o father_n or_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o of_o any_o creature_n whatsoever_o and_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o admirable_a and_o so_o unspeakable_a that_o among_o all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n there_o can_v not_o be_v find_v a_o other_o example_n hereof_o in_o all_o the_o world_n hence_o it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n consist_v of_o body_n and_o reasonable_a soul_n be_v a_o nature_n only_o and_o not_o a_o person_n because_o it_o do_v not_o subsist_v alone_o as_o other_o man_n peter_n paul_n john_n do_v but_o whole_o depend_v on_o the_o person_n of_o the_o word_n into_o the_o unity_n whereof_o it_o be_v receive_v the_o three_o point_n be_v in_o what_o order_n the_o divine_a and_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v unite_v together_o ans._n the_o common_a consent_n of_o divine_n be_v symb_n that_o albeit_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o manhood_n and_o the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n be_v unite_v at_o one_o instant_a yet_o in_o respect_n of_o order_n he_o unite_v unto_o himself_o first_o and_o immediate_o the_o soul_n and_o by_o the_o soul_n the_o body_n and_o it_o seem_v unmeete_a that_o god_n be_v a_o most_o simple_a essence_n shall_v immediate_o be_v join_v to_o a_o compound_n body_n and_o therefore_o it_o may_v well_o be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v unite_v unto_o it_o by_o the_o more_o simple_a part_n of_o man_n which_o be_v the_o soul_n again_o the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n be_v first_o and_o immediate_o join_v to_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n himself_o and_o by_o the_o person_n to_o the_o godhead_n of_o the_o son_n the_o four_o point_n be_v whether_o there_o remain_v any_o difference_n or_o diversity_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n after_o that_o the_o union_n be_v make_v answ._n the_o two_o nature_n concur_v make_v not_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n to_o be_v compound_v proper_o but_o only_o by_o analogy_n for_o as_o body_n and_o soul_n make_v one_o man_n so_o god_n and_o man_n make_v one_o christ_n neither_o be_v they_o turn_v one_o into_o a_o other_o the_o godhead_n into_o the_o manhood_n or_o the_o manhood_n into_o the_o godhead_n as_o water_n be_v turn_v into_o wine_n at_o cana_n in_o galilee_n neither_o be_v they_o confuse_v and_o mingle_v together_o as_o meat_n in_o the_o stomach_n but_o they_o now_o be_v and_o so_o remain_v without_o composition_n conversion_n or_o confusion_n real_o distinct_a and_o that_o in_o three_o respect_n first_o in_o regard_n of_o essence_n for_o the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o godhead_n and_o can_v not_o be_v the_o manhood_n and_o again_o the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o manhood_n and_o not_o the_o godhead_n second_o they_o be_v distinguish_v in_o propriety_n the_o godhead_n be_v most_o wise_a just_a merciful_a omnipotent_a yea_o wisdom_n justice_n mercy_n and_o power_n itself_o and_o so_o be_v not_o the_o manhood_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v again_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v god_n have_v his_o will_n eternal_a and_o uncreated_a which_o be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o as_o he_o be_v man_n he_o have_v another_o will_n create_v in_o time_n &_o place_v in_o his_o reasonable_a soul_n &_o this_o christ_n signify_v when_o he_o say_v not_o my_o will_n but_o thy_o will_n be_v do_v three_o they_o be_v distinct_a in_o their_o action_n or_o operation_n which_o though_o they_o go_v together_o inseparable_o in_o the_o work_n of_o redemption_n yet_o they_o must_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v confound_v but_o distinguish_v as_o the_o nature_n themselves_o be_v christ_n say_v of_o himself_o i_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v down_o my_o life_n and_o i_o have_v power_n to_o take_v it_o up_o again_o 10.18_o and_o hereby_o he_o show_v the_o distinction_n of_o operation_n in_o his_o two_o nature_n for_o to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n be_v a_o action_n of_o the_o manhood_n because_o the_o godhead_n can_v not_o die_v and_o to_o take_v it_o up_o again_o be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o godhead_n alone_o which_o reunite_v the_o soul_n to_o the_o body_n after_o death_n the_o five_o and_o last_o point_n be_v what_o arise_v of_o this_o union_n ans._n by_o reason_n of_o this_o hypostatical_a union_n though_o the_o godhead_n receive_v nothing_o from_o the_o manhood_n yet_o the_o manhood_n itself_o which_o be_v assume_v be_v thereby_o perfect_v and_o enrich_v with_o unspeakable_a dignity_n for_o first_o of_o all_o it_o be_v exalt_v above_o all_o creature_n whatsoever_o even_o angel_n themselves_o in_o that_o it_o have_v subsistence_n in_o the_o second_o person_n in_o trinity_n second_o together_o with_o the_o godhead_n of_o the_o son_n it_o be_v adore_v and_o worship_v with_o divine_a honour_n as_o in_o like_a case_n the_o honour_n do_v to_o the_o king_n himself_o redounde_n to_o the_o crown_n on_o his_o head_n three_o by_o reason_n of_o this_o union_n the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n work_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o redemption_n in_o and_o by_o the_o manhood_n and_o hereupon_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n though_o it_o profit_v nothing_o of_o itself_o yet_o by_o the_o virtue_n which_o it_o receive_v from_o that_o person_n to_o which_o it_o be_v join_v it_o be_v quicken_a flesh_n and_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n again_o from_o this_o union_n of_o two_o nature_n into_o one_o person_n arise_v a_o kind_n of_o speech_n or_o phrase_n peculiar_a to_o the_o scripture_n call_v the_o communication_n of_o propriety_n when_o the_o property_n of_o one_o nature_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o whole_a person_n or_o to_o the_o other_o nature_n as_o when_o paul_n say_v 3.13_o that_o god_n shed_v his_o blood_n that_o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n be_v crucify_v and_o when_o christ_n say_v that_o he_o talk_v with_o nichodemus_n be_v then_o in_o heaven_n the_o use_n of_o the_o personal_a union_n be_v threefold_a first_o it_o serve_v to_o show_v the_o heinousness_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o greatness_n of_o our_o misery_n for_o it_o have_v not_o be_v possible_a to_o make_v a_o satisfaction_n to_o god_n justice_n in_o man_n nature_n for_o the_o least_o offence_n unless_o the_o same_o nature_n have_v first_o of_o all_o be_v near_o join_v to_o the_o godhead_n of_o the_o son_n that_o thereby_o it_o may_v be_v so_o far_o forth_o support_v and_o sustain_v that_o it_o may_v overcome_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n second_o it_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o the_o endless_a love_n of_o god_n to_o man_n for_o whereas_o by_o reason_n of_o adam_n fall_n we_o be_v become_v the_o vile_a of_o all_o creature_n except_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n by_o his_o mystical_a conjunction_n our_o nature_n be_v exalt_v to_o such_o a_o estate_n and_o condition_n as_o be_v far_o above_o all_o creature_n even_o the_o angel_n themselves_o three_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o key_n of_o all_o our_o comfort_n for_o all_o sound_a comfort_n stand_v in_o happiness_n all_o happiness_n be_v in_o fellowship_n with_o god_n all_o fellowship_n with_o god_n be_v by_o christ_n who_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v very_a god_n become_v very_a man_n that_o he_o may_v reconcile_v man_n to_o god_n and_o god_n to_o man_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o conception_n of_o christ_n now_o follow_v his_o birth_n whereby_o in_o the_o ordinary_a time_n of_o travel_n according_a to_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n he_o be_v bring_v forth_o into_o the_o world_n by_o the_o virgin_n marie_n 6_o and_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o christ_n shall_v not_o only_o be_v conceive_v but_o also_o bear_v and_o that_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n that_o he_o may_v be_v know_v to_o be_v very_a man_n indeed_o in_o the_o birth_n we_o may_v consider_v four_o thing_n the_o time_n the_o place_n the_o manner_n the_o manifestation_n of_o it_o the_o time_n be_v in_o the_o last_o day_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 70._o week_n of_o daniel_n 9.24_o which_o be_v to_o be_v account_v from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n and_o make_v in_o all_o 490_o year_n or_o more_o plain_o 3900_o year_n and_o more_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n 4.4_o and_o as_o paul_n say_v in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n and_o the_o evangelist_n have_v note_v of_o purpose_n the_o time_n to_o have_v be_v when_o augustus_n caesar_n tax_v
for_o faith_n be_v the_o subsist_v of_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o see_v 1●_n and_o abraham_n above_o hope_n do_v believe_v under_o hope_n and_o job_n say_v though_o thou_o kill_v i_o yet_o will_v i_o believe_v in_o thou_o in_o philosophy_n a_o man_n begin_v by_o experience_n after_o which_o come_v knowledge_n and_o belief_n as_o when_o a_o man_n have_v put_v his_o hand_n to_o the_o fire_n &_o feel_v it_o to_o be_v hot_a he_o come_v to_o know_v thereby_o that_o fire_n burn_v but_o in_o divinity_n we_o must_v believe_v though_o we_o have_v no_o feel_n first_o come_v faith_n and_o after_o come_v sense_n and_o feeling_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o religion_n stand_v in_o this_o to_o believe_v thing_n neither_o see_v not_o feel_v to_o hope_v above_o all_o hope_n and_o without_o hope_n in_o extremity_n of_o affliction_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n love_v we_o when_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v our_o enemy_n and_o to_o persevere_v in_o the_o same_o to_o the_o end●_n the_o answer_n which_o christ_n make_v to_o his_o prayer_n be_v this_o night_n shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n whereby_o he_o testify_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o suffering_n the_o power_n which_o he_o have_v over_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o verify_v that_o gracious_a promise_n ask_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v seek_v and_o you_o shall_v find_v knock_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v open_v to_o you_o and_o withal_o confute_v the_o popish_a purgatory_n for_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v have_v go_v to_o that_o forge_a place_n of_o torment_n than_o the_o thief_n upon_o the_o cross_n who_o repent_v at_o the_o last_o gasp_n want_v time_n to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o by_o this_o conversion_n of_o the_o thief_n we_o may_v learn_v that_o if_o any_o of_o we_o will_v turn_v to_o god_n and_o repent_v we_o must_v have_v three_o thing_n i._o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o own_o sin_n ii_o from_o the_o bottom_n of_o our_o heart_n we_o must_v confess_v and_o condemn_v ourselves_o for_o they_o and_o speak_v the_o worst_a that_o can_v be_v of_o ourselves_o in_o regard_n of_o our_o sin_n iii_o we_o must_v earnest_o crave_v pardon_n for_o they_o and_o call_v for_o mercy_n at_o god_n hand_n in_o christ_n withal_o reform_v our_o life_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v if_o we_o do_v we_o give_v token_n of_o repentance_n if_o not_o we_o may_v think_v what_o we_o will_v but_o we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o be_v not_o true_o convert_v and_o here_o we_o must_v be_v warn_v to_o take_v heed_n lest_o we_o abuse_v as_o many_o do_v the_o example_n of_o the_o thief_n to_o conclude_v thereby_o that_o we_o may_v repent_v when_o we_o will_v because_o the_o thief_n on_o the_o cross_n be_v convert_v at_o the_o last_o gasp_n for_o there_o be_v not_o a_o second_o example_n like_a to_o this_o in_o all_o the_o whole_a bible_n it_o be_v also_o extraordinary_a indeed_o sundry_a man_n be_v call_v at_o the_o eleven_o hour_n but_o it_o be_v a_o most_o rare_a thing_n to_o find_v the_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n after_o the_o eleven_o hour_n and_o at_o the_o point_n of_o the_o twelve_o this_o mercy_n god_n vouchsafe_v this_o one_o thief_n that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o glass_n in_o which_o we_o may_v behold_v the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o like_a be_v not_o do_v to_o many_o man_n no_o not_o to_o one_o of_o a_o thousand_o let_v we_o rather_o consider_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o other_o thief_n who_o neither_o by_o the_o deal_n of_o his_o fellow_n nor_o by_o any_o speech_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o repentance_n let_v we_o not_o therefore_o defer_v our_o repentance_n to_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n for_o than_o we_o shall_v have_v sore_a enemy_n against_o we_o the_o world_n the_o flesh_n the_o devil_n and_o a_o guilty_a conscience_n &_o the_o best_a way_n be_v before_o hand_n to_o prevent_v they_o and_o experience_n show_v that_o if_o a_o man_n defer_v repentance_n to_o the_o last_o gasp_n often_o when_o he_o will_v repent_v he_o can_v let_v we_o take_v salomon_n counsel_n remember_v thy_o creator_n in_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o youth_n before_o the_o evil_a day_n come_v if_o we_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o lord_n when_o he_o call_v we_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v we_o when_o we_o call_v on_o he_o the_o three_o sign_n be_v the_o eclipse_v or_o darken_v of_o the_o sun_n from_o the_o six_o hour_n to_o the_o nine_o and_o this_o eclipse_n be_v miraculous_a for_o by_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n the_o sin_n be_v never_o eclipse_v but_o in_o the_o new_a moon_n whereas_o contrariwise_o this_o eclipse_n be_v about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o passover_o which_o be_v always_o keep_v at_o the_o full_a moon_n question_n be_v make_v touch_v the_o largeness_n of_o it_o 〈◊〉_d some_o move_v by_o the_o word_n of_o luke_n who_o say_v that_o darkness_n be_v upon_o the_o whole_a earth_n have_v think_v that_o the_o eclipse_n be_v universal_a over_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o i_o rather_o think_v that_o saint_n luke_n meaning_n be_v that_o it_o be_v over_o the_o whole_a region_n or_o country_n of_o jury_n for_o if_o such_o a_o wonder_n have_v happen_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n all_o historiographer_n greek_n and_o latin_a and_o astronomer_n diligent_a observer_n of_o all_o eclipse_n will_v have_v make_v special_a mention_n thereof_o and_o though_o some_o 4._o writer_n say_v that_o it_o be_v over_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o that_o it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o record_n both_o by_o the_o roman_n and_o grecian_n yet_o all_o their_o write_n prove_v no_o more_o but_o this_o that_o it_o be_v over_o jury_n and_o gale_o and_o the_o country_n border_v near_o unto_o the_o use_n of_o this_o miracle_n be_v manifold_a i._o this_o darken_n of_o the_o sun_n give_v a_o check_n to_o the_o jew_n for_o their_o crucify_a of_o christ_n they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o apprehend_v accuse_v and_o condemn_v he_o yet_o this_o glorious_a creature_n the_o sun_n pull_v in_o his_o beam_n be_v as_o it_o be_v ashamed_a to_o behold_v that_o which_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o do_v ii_o it_o serve_v to_o signify_v the_o great_a judgement_n of_o god_n to_o come_v upon_o the_o jew_n for_o when_o as_o christ_n suffer_v darkness_n be_v over_o all_o the_o land_n of_o jury_n and_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o have_v the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n so_o short_o after_o blindness_n of_o mind_n be_v over_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o see_v the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n shine_v unto_o they_o in_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n 4.2_o iii_o it_o serve_v to_o advertise_v we_o that_o such_o as_o carry_v themselves_o towards_o christ_n as_o the_o jew_n do_v have_v nothing_o else_o in_o they_o but_o darkness_n and_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o shadow_n of_o death_n 1.79_o and_o therefore_o not_o able_a any_o whit_n better_o to_o see_v the_o way_n that_o lead_v unto_o life_n than_o he_o which_o be_v cast_v into_o a_o dark_a dungeon_n can_v who_o if_o they_o thus_o remain_v shall_v at_o length_n be_v cast_v into_o utter_a darkness_n this_o be_v the_o estate_n of_o all_o they_o that_o be_v forth_o of_o christ_n 1.1_o we_o must_v labour_v to_o be_v free_v from_o this_o darkness_n that_o the_o daystar_n may_v rise_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o shine_v upon_o we_o and_o put_v life_n into_o us._n iv._o this_o miraculous_a and_o wonderful_a darken_n of_o the_o sun_n do_v convince_v the_o jew_n that_o christ_n who_o they_o crucify_v be_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n and_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v very_o like_a that_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a end_n of_o this_o miracle_n for_o whereas_o neither_o his_o doctrine_n nor_o his_o former_a miracle_n can_v move_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o that_o messiah_n yet_o this_o one_o work_n of_o god_n do_v as_o it_o be_v strike_v the_o nail_n to_o the_o head_n and_o stop_v all_o their_o mouth_n v._o beside_o this_o whereas_o at_o the_o very_a instant_n when_o christ_n be_v about_o to_o make_v a_o satisfaction_n to_o the_o justice_n of_o his_o father_n for_o our_o sin_n the_o sun_n be_v thus_o darken_v it_o teach_v we_o first_o to_o think_v of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n not_o as_o of_o a_o light_a matter_n but_o as_o one_o of_o the_o great_a wonder_n of_o the_o world_n at_o the_o sight_n whereof_o the_o very_a frame_n of_o nature_n be_v change_v second_o to_o think_v of_o our_o own_o sin_n as_o the_o vile_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o they_o deserve_v the_o intolerable_a wrath_n of_o god_n consider_v that_o at_o the_o time_n when_o they_o be_v to_o be_v abolish_v the_o course_n of_o nature_n
even_o in_o the_o very_a heaven_n be_v turn_v upside_o down_o the_o four_o sign_n be_v the_o rend_n of_o the_o veil_n of_o the_o temple_n from_o the_o top_n to_o the_o bottom_n 27.11_o the_o temple_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n the_o one_o more_o inward_a into_o which_o no_o man_n may_v come_v but_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o that_o once_o a_o year_n and_o it_o be_v call_v the_o holy_a of_o holies_n the_o other_o be_v that_o where_o the_o people_n come_v and_o offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o the_o lord_n now_o that_o which_o part_v the_o temple_n into_o these_o two_o part_n be_v call_v the_o veil_n &_o at_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n passion_n it_o be_v rend_v from_o the_o top_n to_o the_o very_a bottom_n this_o have_v diverse_a use_n i._n the_o holy_a of_o holies_n signify_v the_o three_o heaven_n where_o god_n show_v himself_o in_o glory_n and_o majesty_n unto_o his_o saint_n 8_o and_o the_o rend_n of_o the_o veil_n sigure_v unto_o we_o that_o by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n heaven_n which_o be_v otherwise_o shut_v by_o our_o sin_n be_v now_o set_v open_a and_o a_o way_n make_v to_o enter_v thereto_o ii_o it_o signify_v that_o by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n we_o have_v without_o impediment_n 1.51_o free_a access_n to_o come_v unto_o god_n the_o father_n by_o earnest_a prayer_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v a_o most_o unspeakable_a benefit_n iii_o it_o signify_v that_o by_o christ_n death_n a_o end_n be_v put_v to_o all_o ceremony_n to_o ceremonial_a worship_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o that_o therefore_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n there_o remain_v one_o only_a real_a and_o outward_a sacrifice_n that_o be_v christ_n crucify_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o whole_a service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n for_o outward_a ceremony_n most_o simple_a and_o plain_a iv._o the_o temple_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o one_o of_o the_o most_o principal_a prerogative_n that_o the_o jew_n have_v it_o be_v their_o glory_n that_o they_o have_v such_o a_o place_n wherein_o they_o may_v worship_v and_o do_v service_n to_o the_o true_a god_n and_o for_o the_o temple_n sake_n god_n often_o spare_v they_o and_o therefore_o daniel_n pray_v 9.17_o o_o lord_n hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o thy_o servant_n and_o his_o supplication_n and_o cause_v thy_o face_n to_o shine_v upon_o the_o sanctuary_n that_o lie_v waste_v for_o the_o lord_n sake_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o when_o they_o begin_v to_o crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o life_n their_o prerogative_n help_v they_o not_o nay_o they_o be_v deprive_v thereof_o and_o god_n even_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n rend_v the_o veil_n of_o the_o temple_n in_o sunder_o signify_v unto_o they_o that_o if_o they_o forsake_v he_o he_o will_v also_o forsake_v they_o and_o so_o may_v we_o say_v of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n no_o doubt_n for_o the_o gospel_n sake_n we_o have_v outward_a peace_n and_o safety_n and_o many_o other_o blessing_n and_o be_v in_o account_n with_o other_o nation_n yet_o if_o we_o make_v no_o conscience_n to_o obey_v the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o if_o we_o have_v no_o love_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o member_n god_n will_v at_o length_n remove_v his_o candlestick_n from_o we_o and_o utter_o deprive_v we_o of_o this_o ornament_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o make_v our_o land_n as_o odious_a unto_o all_o the_o world_n as_o the_o land_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v at_o this_o day_n let_v we_o therefore_o with_o all_o care_n and_o diligence_n show_v forth_o our_o love_n both_o to_o christ_n himself_o and_o to_o his_o member_n and_o adorn_v the_o gospel_n which_o we_o profess_v by_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n worthy_a of_o it_o the_o five_o sign_n be_v the_o earthquake_n whereby_o hard_a rock_n be_v cleave_v a_o sunder_o and_o it_o serve_v very_o fit_o to_o signify_v further_o unto_o we_o that_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o put_v christ_n to_o death_n be_v so_o heavy_a a_o burden_n that_o the_o earth_n can_v not_o bear_v it_o 5●_n but_o tremble_v thereat_o though_o the_o jew_n themselves_o make_v no_o bone_n of_o it_o and_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v wonder_v at_o that_o the_o earth_n do_v not_o often_o in_o these_o day_n tremble_v and_o quake_v at_o the_o monstrous_a blasphemy_n and_o fearful_a oath_n by_o the_o wound_n and_o blood_n and_o heart_n of_o christ_n whereby_o his_o member_n be_v rend_v asunder_o and_o he_o traitorous_o crucify_v again_o second_o the_o earthquake_n show_v unto_o we_o the_o exceed_a and_o wonderful_a hardness_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o we_o also_o they_o crucify_v christ_n and_o be_v not_o touch_v with_o any_o remorse_n and_o we_o can_v talk_v and_o hear_v of_o his_o death_n yea_o we_o can_v say_v he_o be_v crucify_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o yet_o be_v we_o nothing_o affect_v therewith_o our_o heart_n will_v not_o rend_v when_o as_o hard_a rock_n cleave_v asunder_o three_o the_o move_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o rend_n of_o the_o rock_n asunder_o may_v be_v a_o sign_n unto_o we_o of_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o publish_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o his_o death_n which_o be_v preach_v shall_v shake_v heaven_n and_o earth_n sea_n and_o land_n it_o shall_v move_v the_o earthen_a hard_a and_o rocky_a heart_n of_o man_n 2.7_o and_o raise_v up_o of_o mere_a stone_n and_o rock_n child_n unto_o abraham_n but_o the_o main_a use_n and_o end_n of_o this_o point_n be_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o that_o be_v crucify_v be_v the_o true_a messiah_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o have_v the_o power_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o can_v move_v all_o thing_n at_o his_o pleasure_n the_o six_o sign_n of_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n be_v 27.52.53_o that_o grave_n do_v open_a &_o many_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o sleep_v arise_v and_o come_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o go_v into_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o appear_v unto_o many_o the_o use_n of_o this_o sign_n be_v this_o it_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o christ_n by_o his_o death_n upon_o the_o cross_n do_v vanquish_v death_n in_o the_o grave_n and_o open_v it●_n and_o thereby_o testify_v that_o he_o be_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n so_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o have_v everlasting_a dominion_n over_o we_o but_o that_o he_o will_v raise_v we_o up_o from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o to_o everlasting_a glory_n the_o seven_o sign_n be_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o centurion_n with_o his_o soldier_n which_o stand_v by_o to_o see_v christ_n execute_v s._n mark_n say_v when_o he_o see_v that_o christ_n thus_o cry_v give_v up_o the_o ghost_n he_o say_v 3●_n true_o this_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n thus_o we_o see_v it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n for_o christ_n to_o defend_v his_o own_o cause_n let_v judas_n betray_v he_o peter_n deny_v he_o and_o all_o the_o rest_n forsake_v he_o yet_o he_o can_v if_o it_o so_o please_v he_o make_v the_o centurion_n that_o stand_v by_o to_o see_v he_o execute_v to_o testify_v of_o his_o innocency_n but_o what_o be_v the_o occasion_n that_o move_v he_o to_o give_v so_o worthy_a a_o testimony_n s._n matthew_n say_v 27.54_o it_o be_v fear_v and_o that_o fear_n be_v cause_v by_o hear_v the_o loud_a cry_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o see_v the_o earthquake_n &_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v and_o this_o must_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n not_o to_o pass_v by_o god_n judgement_n which_o daily_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o world_n but_o take_v knowledge_n of_o they_o and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o fix_v both_o our_o eye_n on_o they_o for_o they_o be_v notable_a mean_n to_o strike_v and_o astonish_v the_o rebellious_a heart_n of_o man_n and_o to_o bring_v it_o in_o awe_n and_o subjection_n to_o god_n after_o that_o the_o two_o first_o captain_n with_o their_o fifty_n command_v the_o prophet_n elias_n to_o come_v down_o to_o king_n achaziah_n be_v consume_v with_o fire_n from_o heaven_n the_o king_n send_v his_o three_o captain_n over_o fifty_o with_o his_o fifty_o to_o fetch_v he_o down_o but_o what_o do_v he_o it_o be_v say_v he_o fall_v on_o his_o knee_n before_o eliah_n and_o beseech_v he_o say_v 1●_n o_o man_n of_o god_n i_o pray_v thou_o let_v my_o life_n and_o the_o life_n of_o these_o fifty_o servant_n be_v precious_a in_o thy_o eye_n but_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o he_o pray_v thus_o sure_o he_o observe_v what_o judgement_n of_o god_n fall_v upon_o his_o two_o former_a fellow_n captain_n behold_v say_v he_o there_o come_v down_o fire_n from_o heaven_n and_o devour_v the_o two_o former_a captain_n with_o their_o fifty_n therefore_o let_v my_o life_n be_v precious_a now_o in_o
these_o word_n the_o three_o day_n he_o arise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n and_o of_o it_o we_o be_v first_o to_o speak_v in_o general_a then_o in_o particular_a according_a to_o the_o several_a degree_n thereof_o in_o general_n the_o exaltation_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o glorious_a or_o happy_a estate_n into_o which_o christ_n enter_v after_o he_o have_v wrought_v the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o he_o be_v exalt_v according_a to_o both_o nature_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o godhead_n and_o also_o of_o his_o manhood_n the_o exaltation_n of_o the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o godhead_n in_o the_o manhood_n some_o will_v peradventure_o demand_v how_o christ_n godhead_n can_v be_v exalt_v see_v it_o admit_v no_o alteration_n at_o all_o answer_n in_o itself_o it_o can_v be_v exalt_v yet_o be_v consider_v as_o it_o be_v join_v with_o the_o manhood_n into_o one_o person_n in_o this_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v exalt_v and_o therefore_o i_o say_v the_o exaltation_n of_o christ_n godhead_n be_v the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o glory_n thereof_o in_o the_o manhood_n for_o though_o christ_n from_o his_o incarnation_n be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n and_o his_o godhead_n all_o that_o time_n dwell_v in_o his_o manhood_n yet_o from_o his_o birth_n unto_o his_o death_n the_o same_o godhead_n do_v little_o show_v itself_o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o suffering_n do_v as_o it_o be_v lie_v hide_v under_o the_o veil_n of_o his_o flesh_n as_o the_o soul_n do_v in_o the_o body_n when_o a_o man_n be_v sleep_v that_o thereby_o in_o his_o humane_a nature_n he_o may_v suffer_v the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o accomplish_v the_o work_n of_o redemption_n for_o we_o in_o the_o lo●e_n and_o base_a estate_n of_o a_o servant_n but_o after_o this_o work_n be_v finish_v he_o begin_v by_o degree_n to_o make_v manifest_a the_o power_n of_o his_o godhead_n in_o his_o manhood_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n his_o godhead_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v exalt_v the_o exaltation_n of_o christ_n humanity_n stand_v in_o two_o thing_n the_o first_o that_o he_o lay_v down_o all_o the_o infirmity_n of_o man_n nature_n which_o he_o carry_v about_o he_o so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o a_o servant_n in_o that_o he_o cease_v to_o be_v weary_a hungry_a thirsty_a etc._n etc._n here_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v whether_o the_o wound_n and_o scar_n remain_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n now_o after_o it_o be_v glorify_v 〈…〉_z ans._n some_o think_v that_o they_o do_v remain_v as_o testimony_n of_o that_o victory_n which_o christ_n obtain_v of_o his_o and_o our_o enemy_n and_o that_o they_o be_v no_o deformity_n to_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o be_v themselves_o also_o in_o he_o in_o some_o unspeakable_a manner_n glorify_v but_o indeed_o it_o rather_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o truth_n to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v quite_o abolish_v because_o they_o be_v a_o part_n of_o that_o ignominious_a and_o base_a estate_n in_o which_o our_o saviour_n be_v upon_o the_o cross_n which_o after_o his_o entrance_n into_o glory_n he_o lay_v aside_o and_o if_o it_o may_v be_v think_v that_o the_o wound_n in_o the_o hand_n and_o foot_n of_o christ_n remain_v to_o be_v see_v even_o to_o the_o last_o judgement_n why_o may_v we_o not_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n think_v that_o the_o vein_n of_o his_o body_n remain_v empty_v of_o their_o blood_n because_o it_o be_v shed_v upon_o the_o cross_n the_o second_o thing_n require_v in_o the_o exaltation_n of_o christ_n manhood_n be_v that_o both_o his_o body_n and_o soul_n be_v beautify_v and_o adorn_v with_o all_o quality_n of_o glory_n his_o mind_n be_v enrich_v with_o as_o much_o knowledge_n &_o understanding_n as_o can_v possible_o befall_v any_o creature_n &_o more_o in_o measure_n then_o all_o man_n &_o angel_n have_v and_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o his_o will_n and_o affection_n his_o body_n also_o be_v incorruptible_a &_o it_o be_v make_v a_o shine_a body_n a_o resemblance_n whereof_o some_o of_o his_o disciple_n see_v in_o the_o mount_n and_o it_o be_v endue_v with_o agility_n to_o move_v as_o well_o upward_o as_o downeward●_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o ascension_n of_o his_o body_n into_o heaven_n which_o be_v not_o cause_v by_o constraint_n or_o by_o any_o violent_a motion_n but_o by_o a_o property_n agree_v to_o all_o body_n glorify_v yet_o in_o the_o exaltation_n of_o christ_n manhood_n we_o must_v remember_v two_o caveat_n first_o that_o he_o do_v never_o lay_v aside_o the_o essential_a property_n of_o a_o true_a body_n as_o length_n breadth_n thickness_n visibilitie_n locallitie_n which_o be_v to_o be_v in_o one_o place_n at_o once_o and_o no_o more_o but_o keep_v all_o these_o still_o because_o they_o serve_v for_o the_o be_v of_o his_o body_n second_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o the_o gift_n of_o glory_n in_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o infinite_a but_o finite_a for_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v but_o a_o creature_n and_o therefore_o finite_a can_v not_o receive_v infinite_a grace_n and_o gift_n of_o glory_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v more_o than_o manifest_a that_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o man_n be_v false_a which_o hold_v that_o christ_n body_n glorify_v be_v omnipotent_a and_o infinite_a every_o way_n able_a to_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o will_v for_o this_o be_v to_o make_v a_o creature_n to_o be_v the_o creator_n thus_o much_o of_o christ_n exaltation_n in_o general_n now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o degree_n thereof_o as_o they_o be_v note_v in_o the_o creed_n which_o be_v in_o number_n three_o i._o he_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n ii_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n iii_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a in_o the_o handle_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n we_o must_v consider_v these_o point_n i._n why_o christ_n ought_v to_o rise_v again_o ii_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o rise_n iii_o the_o time_n when_o he_o rise_v iv._n the_o place_n where_o v._o the_o use_v thereof_o for_o the_o first_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o christ_n shall_v rise_v again_o and_o that_o for_o three_o especial_a cause_n first_o that_o hereby_o he_o may_v show_v to_o all_o the_o people_n of_o god_n that_o he_o have_v full_o overcome_v death_n for_o else_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o rise_v how_o shall_v we_o have_v be_v persuade_v in_o our_o conscience_n that_o he_o have_v make_v a_o full_a &_o perfect_a satisfaction_n for_o we_o nay_o rather_o we_o shall_v have_v reason_v thus_o christ_n be_v not_o rise_v &_o therefore_o he_o have_v not_o overcome_v death_n but_o death_n have_v overcome_v he_o second_o christ_n which_o die_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n therefore_o the_o author_n of_o life_n itself_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n it_o be_v neither_o meet_v nor_o possible_a for_o he_o to_o be_v hold_v of_o death_n but_o he_o must_v needs_o rise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n three_o christ_n priesthood_n have_v two_o part_n one_o to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o sin_n by_o his_o one_o only_a sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n the_o other_o to_o apply_v the_o virtue_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n unto_o every_o believer_n now_o he_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n upon_o the_o cross_n before_o the_o last_o pang_n of_o his_o death_n and_o in_o die_v satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o be_v dead_a must_v needs_o rise_v again_o to_o perform_v the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o priesthood_n namely_o to_o apply_v the_o virtue_n thereof_o unto_o all_o that_o shall_v true_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o to_o make_v intercession_n in_o heaven_n unto_o his_o father_n for_o we_o here_o on_o earth_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o first_o point_n now_o to_o come_v to_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n five_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v in_o it_o the_o first_o that_o christ_n rise_v again_o not_o as_o every_o private_a man_n do_v but_o as_o a_o public_a person_n represent_v all_o man_n that_o be_v to_o come_v to_o life_n eternal_a for_o as_o in_o his_o passion_n so_o also_o in_o his_o resurrection_n he_o stand_v in_o our_o room_n and_o place_n 2.6_o and_o therefore_o when_o he_o rise_v from_o death_n we_o all_o yea_o the_o whole_a church_n rise_v in_o he_o and_o together_o with_o he_o and_o this_o point_n not_o consider_v we_o do_v not_o conceive_v aright_o of_o christ_n resurrection_n neither_o can_v we_o reap_v sound_a comfort_n by_o it_o the_o second_o be_v that_o christ_n himself_o and_o no_o other_o for_o he_o do_v by_o his_o own_o power_n raise_v himself_o to_o life_n this_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o he_o mean_v when_o he_o say_v destroy_v
yet_o afterward_o for_o a_o time_n he_o do_v as_o it_o be_v hide_v the_o same_o in_o some_o corner_n of_o their_o heart_n so_o as_o they_o have_v no_o feel_n thereof_o but_o think_v themselves_o to_o be_v void_a of_o all_o grace_n and_o this_o he_o do_v for_o no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o humble_v they_o and_o yet_o again_o after_o all_o this_o the_o first_o grace_n be_v further_a renew_a and_o reviue_v thus_o deal_v the_o lord_n with_o david_n and_o solomon_n for_o whereas_o he_o be_v a_o penman_n of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o a_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n we_o may_v not_o think_v that_o he_o be_v whole_o forsake_v with_o peter_n and_o in_o this_o place_n with_o thomas_n and_o the_o experience_n of_o this_o shall_v every_o servant_n of_o god_n find_v in_o himself_o the_o second_o appearance_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o seven_o of_o the_o disciple_n as_o they_o go_v on_o fish_v 1●_n in_o which_o he_o give_v three_o testimony_n of_o his_o godhead_n and_o that_o by_o death_n his_o power_n be_v nothing_o diminish_v the_o first_o that_o when_o the_o disciple_n have_v fish_v all_o night_n and_o catch_v nothing_o afterward_o by_o his_o direction_n they_o catch_v fish_n in_o abundance_n and_o that_o present_o this_o teach_v we_o that_o christ_n be_v a_o sovereign_a lord_n over_o all_o creature_n and_o have_v the_o dispose_n of_o they_o in_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o that_o if_o good_a success_n follow_v not_o when_o man_n be_v painful_a in_o their_o calling_n it_o be_v because_o god_n will_v prepare_v and_o make_v they_o fit_a for_o a_o further_a blessing_n christ_n come_v in_o the_o morning_n and_o give_v his_o disciple_n a_o great_a draught_n of_o fish_n yet_o before_o this_o can_v be_v they_o must_v labour_v all_o night_n in_o vain_a joseph_n must_v be_v make_v ruler_n over_o all_o egypt_n but_o first_o he_o must_v be_v cast_v into_o a_o dungeon_n where_o he_o can_v see_v no_o sun_n nor_o light_n to_o prepare_v he_o to_o that_o honour_n and_o david_n must_v be_v king_n over_o israel_n but_o the_o lord_n will_v first_o prepare_v he_o hereunto_o by_o raise_v up_o saul_n to_o persecute_v he_o therefore_o when_o god_n send_v any_o hindrance_n unto_o we_o in_o our_o calling_n we_o must_v not_o despair_v nor_o be_v discourage_v for_o they_o be_v the_o mean_n whereby_o god_n make_v we_o fit_a to_o receive_v great_a blessing_n at_o his_o hand_n either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v the_o second_o be_v that_o the_o net_n be_v unbroken_a though_o it_o have_v in_o it_o great_a fish_n to_o the_o number_n of_o a_o hundred_o fifty_o three_o the_o three_o that_o when_o the_o disciple_n come_v to_o land_n they_o see_v hot_a coal_n and_o fish_n lay_v thereon_o and_o bread_n now_o some_o may_v ask_v whence_o be_v this_o food_n answ._n the_o same_o lord_n that_o be_v able_a to_o provide_v a_o whale_n to_o swallow_v up_o jonas_n and_o so_o to_o save_v he_o and_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o provide_v a_o fish_n for_o peter_n angle_n with_o a_o piece_n of_o twenty_o penny_n in_o the_o mouth_n and_o to_o make_v a_o little_a bread_n and_o a_o few_o fish_n to_o feed_v so_o many_o thousand_o in_o the_o wilderness_n the_o same_o also_o do_v of_o himself_o provide_v bread_n and_o fish_n for_o his_o disciple_n this_o teach_v we_o that_o not_o not_o only_o the_o blessing_n but_o also_o the_o very_a have_v of_o meat_n drink_n apparel_n be_v from_o christ_n and_o hereupon_o all_o state_n of_o man_n even_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v teach_v to_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v give_v they_o their_o daily_a bread_n again_o when_o we_o sit_v down_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v this_o must_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n that_o we_o be_v the_o guest_n of_o christ_n himself_o our_o food_n which_o we_o have_v come_v of_o his_o mere_a gift_n and_o he_o it_o be_v that_o entertain_v we_o if_o we_o can_v see_v it_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n we_o must_v sober_o and_o with_o great_a reverence_n in_o fear_n and_o tremble_a use_n all_o god_n creature_n as_o in_o his_o presence_n and_o when_o we_o eat_v and_o drink_v we_o must_v always_o look_v that_o all_o our_o speech_n be_v such_o as_o may_v beseem_v the_o guest_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ._n usual_o the_o practice_n of_o man_n be_v far_o otherwise_o for_o in_o feast_v many_o take_v liberty_n to_o surfeit_v &_o to_o be_v drink_v to_o swear_v &_o to_o blaspheme_v but_o if_o we_o serve_v the_o lord_n let_v we_o remember_v who_o guest_n we_o be_v and_o who_o be_v our_o entertainer_n and_o so_o behave_v ourselves_o as_o be_v in_o his_o presence_n that_o all_o our_o action_n and_o word_n may_v tend_v to_o his_o glory_n 15.7_o the_o three_o appearance_n be_v to_o james_n as_o s._n paul_n record_v although_o the_o same_o be_v not_o mention_v in_o any_o of_o the_o evangelist_n 28.16_o the_o four_o be_v to_o all_o his_o disciple_n in_o a_o mountain_n whither_o he_o have_v appoint_v they_o to_o come_v 1.12_o the_o five_o &_o last_o appearance_n be_v in_o the_o mount_n of_o olive_n when_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n of_o these_o three_o last_o appearance_n because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v only_o mention_v they_o i_o omit_v to_o speak_v and_o with_o the_o repeat_n of_o they_o i_o let_v they_o pass_v thus_o much_o of_o the_o appearance_n of_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n the_o witness_n thereof_o be_v of_o three_o sort_n i._o angel_n ii_o woman_n that_o come_v to_o the_o grave_n to_o embaulme_n he_o iii_o christ_n own_o disciple_n who_o do_v publish_v and_o preach_v the_o same_o according_a as_o they_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o of_o these_o likewise_o i_o omit_v to_o speak_v because_o there_o be_v not_o any_o special_a thing_n mention_v of_o they_o by_o the_o evangelist_n now_o follow_v the_o use_n which_o be_v twofold_a some_o respect_n christ_n and_o some_o respect_n ourselves_o use_v which_o concern_v christ_n be_v three_o i._o whereas_o christ_n jesus_n be_v stark_o dead_a rose_n again_o to_o life_n by_o his_o own_o power_n it_o serve_v to_o prove_v unto_o we_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n thus_o paul_n speak_v of_o christ_n say_v 1.4_o that_o he_o be_v declare_v mighty_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n touch_v the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n by_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o david_n god_n say_v 2.7_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n i_o have_v beget_v thou_o which_o place_n must_v be_v understand_v not_o so_o much_o of_o the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o christ_n before_o all_o world_n as_o of_o the_o manifestation_n thereof_o in_o time_n after_o this_o manner_n this_o day_n that_o be_v at_o the_o time_n of_o thy_o incarnation_n but_o especial_o at_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o resurrection_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o that_o be_v i_o have_v make_v manifest_a that_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n so_o be_v this_o place_n expound_v by_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o acts._n 13.32.33_o second_o christ_n rise_v from_o death_n by_o his_o own_o po●er_n prove_v unto_o we_o evident_o that_o he_o be_v lord_n over_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v &_o this_o use_n s._n paul_n make_v hereof_o for_o say_v he_o 1●9_n christ_n therefore_o die_v that_o he_o may_v be_v lord_n both_o of_o the_o dead_a &_o of_o the_o quick_a and_o indeed_o whereas_o he_o rise_v again_o on_o this_o m●ner_n he_o do_v hereby_o show_v himself_o most_o plain_o to_o be_v a_o mighty_a prince_n over_o the_o grave●_n death_n hell_n &_o condemnation_n &_o one_o that_o have_v al●_n sufficient_a power_n to_o overcome_v they_o three_o it_o prove_v unto_o we_o that_o he_o be_v a_o perfect_a priest_n and_o that_o his_o death_n &_o passion_n be_v a_o perfect_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o the_o ●innes_n of_o mankind_n for_o whereas_o christ_n die_v he_o die_v for_o our_o sin_n now_o if_o he_o have_v not_o full_o satisfy_v for_o they_o all_o though_o there_o have_v remain_v but_o one_o sin_n for_o which_o he_o have_v make_v no_o satisfaction_n he_o have_v not_o rise_v again_o but_o death_n which_o come_v into_o the_o world_n by_o sin_n and_o be_v strengthen_v by_o it_o will_v have_v hold_v he_o in_o bondage_n and_o therefore_o whereas_o he_o rise_v again_o it_o be_v more_o than_o manifest_a that_o he_o have_v make_v so_o full_a a_o satisfaction_n that_o the_o merit_n thereof_o do_v and_o shall_v countervail_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o all_o our_o offence_n to_o this_o purpose_n paul_n say_v ●●_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o rise_v again_o your_o faith_n be_v vain_a and_o you_o be_v yet_o in_o your_o sin_n that_o be_v christ_n have_v not_o satisfy_v for_o your_o sin_n or_o at_o least_o you_o can_v not_o
of_o christ_n in_o feed_v clothe_v lodging_n and_o visit_v of_o they_o for_o we_o must_v think_v that_o many_o of_o those_o against_o who_o this_o reason_n shall_v be_v bring_v do_v know_v religion_n and_o profess_v the_o same_o yea_o they_o prophesy_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o call_v on_o he_o say_v lord_n lord_n and_o yet_o the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n go_v against_o they_o because_o they_o show_v no_o compassion_n towards_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o principal_a virtue_n and_o a_o special_a note_n of_o a_o christian_a to_o show_v the_o bowel_n of_o compassion_n towards_o his_o needy_a brethren_n here_o again_o we_o note_v that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o abstain_v from_o evil_a but_o we_o must_v also_o do_v good_a for_o it_o be_v not_o say_v i_o be_v a_o hunger_a and_o you_o take_v from_o i_o but_z 3._o when_o i_o be_v hungry_a you_o give_v i_o no_o m●ate_n they_o be_v not_o charge_v with_o do_v evil_a but_o for_o not_o do_v good_a s._n john_n say_v the_o axe_n be_v lay_v to_o the_o root_n of_o the_o tree_n and_o the_o reason_n follow_v not_o because_o the_o tree_n bear_v evil_a fruit_n but_o because_o it_o bear_v not_o good_a fruit_n therefore_o it_o must_v be_v cast_v into_o the_o fire_n this_o condemn_v a_o bad_a opinion_n of_o all_o worldly_a man_n who_o think_v that_o all_o be_v well_o and_o that_o god_n will_v be_v merciful_a unto_o they_o because_o they_o do_v no_o man_n harm_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o the_o devil_n blind_v the_o eye_n of_o man_n for_o it_o will_v not_o stand_v for_o payment_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o say_v i_o have_v hurt_v no_o man_n unless_o we_o further_o do_v all_o the_o good_a we_o can_v the_o three_o point_n be_v the_o defence_n which_o impenitent_a sinner_n make_v for_o themselves_o in_o these_o word_n lord_n when_o see_v we_o thou_o a_o hunger_a or_o thirsty_a or_o naked_a or_o in_o prison_n or_o sick_a and_o do_v not_o minister_v unto_o thou_o thus_o in_o their_o own_o defence_n that_o which_o christ_n say_v they_o gainsay_v &_o justify_v themselves_o here_o mark_v the_o nature_n of_o all_o impenitent_a sinner_n which_o be_v to_o sooth_n and_o flatter_v themselves_o in_o sin_n and_o to_o maintain_v their_o own_o righteousness_n like_v to_o the_o proud_a pharisie_n in_o his_o prayer_n who_o brag_v of_o his_o goodness_n and_o say_v 18.10_o lord_n i_o thank_v thou_o that_o i_o be_o not_o as_o other_o man_n be_v extortioner_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o very_a same_o manner_n ignorant_a person_n of_o all_o sort_n among_o we_o justify_v themselves_o in_o their_o strong_a faith_n and_o brag_v of_o their_o zeal_n of_o god_n glory_n and_o of_o their_o love_n to_o their_o brethren_n and_o yet_o indeed_o show_v no_o sign_n thereof_o and_o true_o we_o be_v not_o to_o marvel_v when_o we_o see_v such_o person_n to_o justify_v themselves_o before_o man_n whereas_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o do_v it_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n before_o the_o lord_n jesus_n himself_o the_o last_o point_n be_v christ_n answer_n to_o they_o again_o in_o these_o word_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o do_v it_o not_o to_o one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o these_o you_o do_v it_o not_o to_o i_o this_o sentence_n be_v repeat_v again_o do_v teach_v we_o the_o lesson_n which_o we_o learn_v before_o that_o when_o we_o be_v to_o show_v compassion_n to_o any_o man_n especial_o if_o he_o be_v a_o member_n of_o god_n church_n we_o must_v not_o consider_v his_o outward_a estate_n or_o his_o baseness_n in_o that_o he_o want_v food_n or_o raiment_n but_o behold_v christ_n in_o he_o not_o respect_v he_o as_o a_o man_n but_o as_o a_o member_n of_o christ._n this_o it_o be_v that_o must_v move_v we_o to_o compassion_n and_o cause_v we_o to_o make_v a_o supply_n of_o his_o want_n more_o than_o any_o respect_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o and_o sure_o when_o christ_n in_o his_o member_n come_v to_o our_o door_n and_o complain_n that_o he_o be_v hungry_a and_o sick_a and_o naked_a if_o our_o bowel_n yearn_v not_o towards_o he_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o spark_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o us._n the_o seven_o point_n in_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n be_v the_o retribution_n or_o reward_n in_o these_o word_n and_o they_o shall_v go_v into_o everlasting_a pain_n and_o the_o righteous_a into_o life_n eternal_a how_o do_v the_o wicked_a enter_v into_o hell_n and_o the_o godly_a into_o heaven_n answ._n by_o the_o powerful_a and_o command_a voice_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v of_o that_o force_n that_o neither_o the_o great_a rebel_n that_o ever_o be_v among_o man_n nor_o all_o the_o devil_n in_o hell_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o withstand_v it_o and_o see_v that_o after_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n we_o must_v remain_v for_o ever_o either_o in_o heaven_n or_o in_o hell_n we_o be_v to_o look_v about_o we_o and_o to_o take_v heed_n unto_o our_o heart_n indeed_o if_o the_o time_n be_v but_o a_o thousand_o or_o two_o thousand_o year_n then_o with_o more_o reason_n man_n may_v take_v liberty_n to_o themselves_o but_o see_v it_o be_v without_o end_n we_o must_v be_v most_o careful_a through_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o our_o life_n so_o to_o live_v and_o behave_v ourselves_o that_o when_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n shall_v come_v we_o may_v avoid_v that_o fearful_a sentence_n of_o everlasting_a woe_n and_o condemnation_n which_o shall_v be_v pronounce_v against_o the_o wicked_a and_o whereas_o all_o wicked_a man_n shall_v go_v to_o hell_n at_o christ_n commandment_n it_o teach_v we_o willing_o to_o obey_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n for_o if_o we_o rebel_v against_o his_o voice_n in_o this_o world_n when_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n sentence_n shall_v be_v pronounce_v against_o we_o we_o shall_v hear_v a_o other_o voice_n at_o the_o give_v whereof_o we_o must_v obey_v whether_o we_o will_v or_o no_o and_o thereupon_o go_v to_o everlasting_a pain_n whither_o we_o will_v not_o let_v we_o therefore_o in_o time_n deny_v ourselves_o for_o our_o sin_n past_a and_o only_o rely_v upon_o christ_n jesus_n for_o the_o free_a remission_n of_o they_o all_o and_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v lead_v a_o new_a reform_a life_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o order_n of_o christ_n his_o proceed_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n now_o follow_v the_o use_v thereof_o which_o be_v either_o comfort_n to_o god_n church_n or_o duty_n for_o all_o man_n the_o first_o comfort_n or_o benefit_n be_v this_o that_o the_o same_o person_n which_o die_v for_o we_o upon_o the_o cross_n to_o work_v our_o redemption_n must_v also_o be_v our_o judge_n and_o hence_o we_o reap_v two_o special_a comfort_n i._o the_o people_n of_o god_n shall_v hereby_o enjoy_v full_a redemption_n from_o all_o misery_n and_o calamity_n which_o they_o have_v in_o this_o life_n so_o christ_n himself_o speak_v of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n 21.28_o when_o you_o see_v these_o thing_n lift_v up_o your_o head_n for_o your_o redemption_n draw_v near_o then_o he_o shall_v wipe_v all_o tear_n from_o their_o eye_n second_o we_o shall_v hereby_o have_v a_o final_a deliverance_n from_o all_o sin_n now_o what_o a_o joyful_a thing_n it_o be_v to_o be_v free_v from_o sin_n may_v plain_o appear_v by_o the_o cry_n of_o s._n paul_n o_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o this_o body_n of_o death_n and_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o he_o which_o know_v what_o sin_n be_v &_o serious_o repent_v he_o of_o the_o same_o will_v wish_v with_o all_o his_o heart_n to_o be_v out_o of_o this_o world_n that_o he_o may_v leave_v off_o to_o sin_n and_o thereby_o cease_v to_o displease_v god_n the_o second_o comfort_n be_v this_o the_o godly_a in_o this_o world_n have_v many_o enemy_n they_o be_v revile_v slander_v and_o oftentimes_o put_v to_o death_n well_o christ_n jesus_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n will_v take_v every_o man_n case_n into_o his_o own_o hand_n he_o will_v then_o hear_v the_o complaint_n of_o the_o godly_a howsoever_o in_o this_o world_n they_o find_v no_o remedy_n and_o then_o he_o will_v revenge_v their_o blood_n that_o be_v shed_v upon_o the_o earth_n according_a to_o their_o prayer_n 6.10_o this_o comfort_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v especial_o of_o all_o those_o that_o be_v any_o way_n persecute_v or_o molest_v by_o the_o wicked_a of_o this_o world_n now_o follow_v the_o duty_n to_o be_v learn_v of_o every_o one_o of_o we_o and_o they_o be_v diverse_a first_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n serve_v
he_o say_v 1.18_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n to_o his_o body_n which_o be_v his_o church_n and_o when_o he_o ascribe_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n not_o only_o to_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n but_o to_o the_o church_n itself_o as_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n to_o abraham_n and_o his_o seed_n be_v the_o promise_v make_v he_o say_v not_o and_o to_o his_o seed_n as_o speak_v of_o many_o but_z and_o unto_o his_o seed_n as_o speak_v of_o one_o which_o be_v christ_n that_o be_v not_o the_o redeemer_n alone_o but_o also_o the_o church_n redeem_v for_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n be_v not_o the_o only_a seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o this_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v almost_o in_o so_o many_o word_n set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n in_o that_o it_o be_v call_v the_o family_n of_o god_n partly_o in_o heaven_n 3.15_o and_o partly_o in_o earth_n name_v of_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v also_o call_v the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n the_o mother_n of_o we_o all_o and_o the_o celestial_a jerusalem_n and_o 12.22_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v now_o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o nature_n estate_n and_o part_n of_o the_o church_n two_o point_n among_o the_o rest_n must_v be_v consider_v the_o efficient_a cause_n thereof_o c●●s_v predestination_n and_o the_o form_n the_o mystical_a union_n in_o handle_v the_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n my_o meaning_n be_v only_o to_o stand_v on_o such_o point_n as_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o word_n and_o necessary_a tend_v to_o edification_n and_o first_o i_o will_v show_v what_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o second_o the_o contrary_a falsehood_n in_o the_o truth_n i_o consider_v four_o thing_n i._n what_o predestination_n be_v ii_o what_o be_v the_o order_n of_o it_o iii_o what_o be_v the_o part_n of_o it_o iv._n what_o be_v the_o use_n predestination_n may_v thus_o be_v define_v it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o have_v before_o all_o time_n purpose_v in_o himself_o to_o show_v mercy_n on_o some_o man_n &_o to_o pass_v by_o other_o show_v his_o justice_n on_o they_o for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o own_o name_n first_o i_o say_v it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o his_o counsel_n because_o the_o counsel_n or_o decree_n of_o god_n universal_o extend_v itself_o to_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v and_o predestination_n be_v god_n decree_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o concern_v the_o reasonable_a creature_n especial_o man_n now_o in_o every_o purpose_n or_o decree_n of_o god_n three_o thing_n must_v be_v consider_v the_o beginning_n the_o matter_n the_o end_n the_o beginning_n be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o will_v and_o appoint_v the_o estate_n of_o his_o creature_n &_o it_o be_v the_o most_o absolute_a supreme_a and_o sovereign_a cause_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o have_v be_v have_v nothing_o either_o above_o itself_o or_o out_o of_o itself_o to_o be_v a_o impulsive_a cause_n to_o move_v or_o incline_v it_o and_o to_o say_v otherwise_o be_v to_o make_v the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o be_v no_o will_n indeed_o man_n will_n be_v move_v and_o dispose_v by_o external_a cause_n out_o of_o themselves_o borrow_v from_o the_o thing_n whereof_o deliberation_n be_v make_v because_o they_o be_v to_o be_v rule_v by_o equity_n and_o reason_n and_o a_o man_n bare_a will_n without_o reason_n be_v nothing_o now_o god_n will_v be_v not_o rule_v by_o another_o rule_n of_o reason_n or_o justice_n but_o itself_o be_v a_o absolute_a rule_n both_o of_o justice_n and_o reason_n a_o thing_n be_v not_o first_o of_o all_o reasonable_a and_o just_a and_o then_o afterward_o will_v by_o god_n but_o it_o be_v first_o of_o all_o will_v by_o god_n and_o thereupon_o become_v reasonable_a and_o just_a the_o matter_n of_o his_o purpose_n be_v a_o free_a manifestation_n of_o two_o of_o the_o most_o ptincipall_a attribute_n of_o the_o godhead_n mercy_n and_o justice_n and_o that_o with_o a_o limitation_n or_o restraint_n of_o mercy_n to_o some_o of_o the_o creature_n and_o justice_n to_o some_o other_o because_o it_o be_v his_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n and_o we_o be_v not_o to_o imagine_v that_o this_o be_v a_o point_n of_o cruelty_n in_o god_n for_o his_o very_a essence_n or_o nature_n be_v not_o justice_n alone_o or_o mercy_n alone_o but_o justice_n and_o mercy_n both_o together_o and_o therefore_o to_o purpose_v the_o declaration_n of_o they_o both_o upon_o his_o creature_n over_o who_o he_o be_v a_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o that_o without_o other_o respect_n upon_o his_o very_a will_n and_o pleasure_n be_v no_o point_n of_o injustice_n the_o supreme_a end_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n be_v the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o own_o glory_n partly_o in_o his_o mercy_n and_o partly_o in_o his_o justice_n for_o in_o common_a equity_n the_o end_n which_o he_o propounde_v unto_o himself_o of_o all_o his_o do_n must_v be_v answerable_a to_o his_o nature_n which_o be_v majesty_n and_o glory_n and_o as_o i_o have_v say_v justice_n and_o mercy_n itself_o and_o because_o paul_n disputation_n in_o the_o 9_o to_o the_o roman_n give_v light_a and_o sufficient_a confirmation_n to_o this_o which_o i_o now_o teach_v i_o will_v stand_v a_o little_a to_o open_v and_o resolve_v the_o same_o from_o the_o 1._o verse_n to_o the_o 6._o he_o set_v down_o his_o grief_n conceive_v for_o his_o brethren_n the_o jew_n and_o therewithal_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v think_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o malice_n he_o do_v only_o in_o close_a and_o obscure_a manner_n insinuate_v the_o rejection_n of_o that_o nation_n this_o do_v in_o the_o 6._o v._n he_o answer_v a_o secret_a objection_n which_o may_v be_v make_v on_o this_o manner_n if_o the_o jew_n be_v reject_v they_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v of_o none_o effect_v that_o be_v than_o the_o covenant_n make_v with_o the_o forefather_n be_v void_a but_o the_o covenant_n can_v not_o be_v void_a therefore_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o reject_v the_o assumption_n he_o take_v for_o grant_v and_o deny_v the_o consequence_n of_o the_o proposition_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o denial_n be_v because_o there_o be_v a_o distinction_n between_o man_n and_o man_n even_o among_o the_o jew_n whereby_o some_o be_v indeed_o in_o the_o covenant_n some_o not_o and_o this_o distinction_n be_v prove_v by_o three_o example_n the_o first_o in_o this_o verse_n that_o of_o the_o child_n of_o jacob_n the_o common_a parent_n of_o all_o the_o jew_n some_o be_v israel_n that_o be_v true_o in_o the_o covenant_n as_o jacob_n be_v and_o some_o be_v not_o israel_n now_o it_o may_v be_v further_o object_v that_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o only_o the_o posterity_n of_o jacob_n but_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n in_o who_o all_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v bless_v and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v reject_v and_o to_o this_o paul_n answer_v vers_fw-la 7._o allege_v a_o second_o example_n of_o the_o distinction_n between_o man_n and_o man_n out_o of_o the_o family_n of_o abraham_n in_o which_o some_o be_v indeed_o son_n some_o be_v not_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o first_o he_o set_v down_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n in_o moses_n in_o isaac_n shall_v thy_o seed_n be_v call_v and_o second_o make_v a_o exposition_n of_o they_o with_o a_o collection_n on_o this_o manner_n all_o they_o which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o promise_n be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n or_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o isaac_n be_v a_o son_n of_o promise_n and_o not_o ishmael_n therefore_o isaac_n be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o blessing_n and_o not_o ishmael_n the_o proposition_n be_v in_o the_o 8._o verse_n the_o assumption_n in_o the_o 9_o vers_fw-la the_o conclusion_n in_o the_o 7._o verse_n here_o mark_v i._n how_o he_o make_v a_o double_a seed_n one_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n the_o other_o spiritual_a and_o two_o kind_n of_o son_n one_o of_o the_o flesh_n the_o other_o son_n of_o the_o promise_n or_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o he_o put_v the_o one_o for_o the_o other_o ii_o that_o the_o distinction_n between_o isaac_n and_o ishmael_n whereby_o one_o be_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n the_o other_o not_o stand_v not_o in_o their_o foresee_v say_v and_o unbelief_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o they_o but_o in_o the_o purpose_n and_o will_n of_o god_n itself_o for_o isaac_n be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o promise_n because_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o it_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o believe_v and_o be_v adopt_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o make_v heir_n of_o the_o covenant_n give_v to_o abraham_n and_o therefore_o consequent_o the_o right_a of_o apoption_n befall_v he_o by_o the_o mere_a good_a pleasure_n of_o
enemy_n the_o flesh_n the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o the_o world_n 2._o furthermore_o whereas_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o say_v our_o father_n this_o serve_v to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n that_o in_o pray_v to_o god_n we_o must_v bring_v love_n to_o man_n with_o us._n we_o must_v all_o be_v the_o child_n of_o one_o father_n love_o dispose_v one_o to_o another_o for_o how_o shall_v he_o call_v god_n his_o father_n who_o will_v not_o take_v the_o child_n of_o god_n for_o his_o brother_n math._n 5_o 2d_o when_o thou_o be_v to_o offer_v thy_o gift_n unto_o god_n if_o thou_o have_v aught_o against_o thy_o brother_n first_o be_v reconcile_v and_o then_o come_v and_o offer_v thy_o gift_n so_o also_o esa._n ●_o 15_o the_o lord_n say_v that_o when_o they_o pray_v unto_o he_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v why_o because_o their_o han●s_n be_v full_a of_o blood_n in_o these_o time_n many_o man_n can_v be_v content_a formal_o to_o pray_v but_o yet_o they_o will_v not_o leave_v bribe_v oppression_n deceit_n usury_n etc._n etc._n the_o common_a song_n of_o the_o world_n be_v every_o man_n for_o himself_o and_o god_n for_o we_o all_o this_o be_v the_o common_a love_n and_o care_v that_o man_n have_v each_o to_o other_o the_o prayer_n of_o such_o be_v abominable_a even_o as_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o a_o dog_n as_o isaiah_n say_v for_o how_o can_v they_o call_v god_n their_o father_n that_o have_v no_o love_n to_o their_o brethren_n 3._o three_o hence_o we_o may_v learn_v that_o god_n be_v no_o accepter_n of_o person_n for_o this_o prayer_n be_v give_v to_o all_o man_n of_o what_o state_n or_o degree_n soever_o all_o then_o as_o well_o poor_a as_o rich_a unlearned_a as_o learned_a subject_n as_o ruler_n may_v say_v our_o father_n it_o be_v not_o with_o the_o lord_n as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o world_n but_o all_o be_v his_o child_n that_o do_v believe_v the_o poor_a man_n have_v as_o good_a interest_n in_o god_n kingdom_n and_o may_v call_v god_n father_n as_o well_o as_o the_o king_n therefore_o the_o weak_a sort_n be_v to_o comfort_v themselves_o hereby_o know_v that_o god_n be_v a_o father_n to_o they_o as_o well_o as_o to_o abraham_n david_n peter_n and_o such_o as_o be_v endue_v with_o more_o grace_n must_v not_o therefore_o swell_v in_o pride_n because_o they_o have_v not_o god_n to_o be_v their_o father_n more_o than_o their_o inferior_n have_v which_o art_n in_o heaven_n 1._o the_o meaning_n quest._n how_o may_v god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o heaven_n see_v he_o be_v infinite_a and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o be_v every_o where_o 1._o king_n 8.27_o the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n be_v not_o able_a to_o contain_v he_o ans._n god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o heaven_n first_o because_o his_o majesty_n that_o be_v his_o power_n wisdom_n justice_n mercy_n be_v make_v manifest_a from_o thence_o unto_o us._n psal._n 115.3_o our_o god_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o will_n psal._n 2.4_o he_o that_o dwell_v in_o heaven_n shall_v laugh_v they_o to_o scorn_n and_o the_o lord_n shall_v have_v they_o in_o derision_n esai_n say_v 66.2_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n heaven_n be_v my_o throne_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v my_o footstool_n second_o after_o this_o life_n he_o will_v manifest_v and_o exhibit_v the_o fullness_n of_o his_o glory_n to_o his_o angel_n and_o saint_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o that_o immediate_o and_o visible_o 2._o the_o use_n 1._o hereby_o first_o we_o learn_v that_o romish_a pilgrimage_n whereby_o man_n go_v from_o place_n to_o place_n to_o worship_n god_n be_v vain_a and_o foolish_a the_o god_n to_o who_o we_o must_v pray_v be_v in_o heaven_n now_o let_v man_n travel_v to_o what_o place●_n or_o country_n they_o will_v they_o shall_v not_o come_v the_o near_a to_o heaven_n or_o near_o to_o god_n by_o travel_v see_v the_o earth_n be_v in_o every_o part_n alike_o distant_a from_o heaven_n 2._o second_o this_o overthrow_v popish_a idolatry_n as_o worship_v of_o cross_n crucifix_n rood_n &c._n &c._n use_v to_o put_v man_n in_o mind_n of_o god_n and_o christ._n we_o be_v teach_v to_o lift_v up_o our_o eye_n to_o heaven_n see_v god_n be_v there_o and_o how_o can_v we_o do_v this_o as_o long_o as_o our_o mind_n and_o eye_n be_v pore_a upon_o a_o image_n make_v by_o man_n art_n 3._o again_o we_o be_v here_o admonish_v to_o use_v the_o action_n of_o prayer_n with_o as_o great_a reverence_n as_o possible_a may_v be_v and_o not_o to_o think_v of_o god_n in_o any_o earthly_a manner_n well_o reason_n solomon_n eccles._n 5.1_o be_v not_o rash_a with_o thy_o mouth_n to_o speak_v a_o word_n before_o god_n why_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n thou_o be_v in_o earth_n therefore_o let_v thy_o word_n be_v few_o this_o reverence_n must_v appear_v in_o holiness_n of_o all_o our_o thought_n and_o affection_n and_o in_o all_o comeliness_n of_o gesture_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n all_o wander_a by-thought_n &_o all_o vain_a babble_n be_v to_o be_v avoid_v but_o how_o go_v the_o case_n with_o we_o that_o on_o the_o time_n appoint_v come_v to_o the_o assembly_n to_o pray_v many_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o blindness_n pray_v without_o understanding_n many_o when_o they_o be_v present_a at_o prayer_n yet_o have_v their_o heart_n occupy_v about_o other_o matter_n about_o their_o good_n and_o worldly_a business_n such_o man_n have_v no_o joy_n or_o gladness_n in_o pray_v it_o be_v a_o burden_n to_o they_o many_o come_v to_o the_o assembly_n for_o custom_n only_o or_o for_o fear_n of_o punishment_n if_o they_o may_v be_v leave_v free_a they_o can_v find_v in_o their_o heart_n not_o to_o pray_v at_o all_o but_o let_v all_o such_o man_n know_v that_o this_o manner_n of_o pray_v be_v a_o very_a grievous_a sin_n nay_o great_a than_o mock_v of_o father_n or_o mother_n kill_v or_o steal_v for_o it_o be_v direct_o against_o god_n the_o other_o against_o man_n this_o sin_n because_o it_o be_v against_o the_o first_o table_n and_o therefore_o more_o hard_a to_o be_v discern_v it_o be_v light_o esteem_v and_o it_o less_o trouble_v the_o conscience_n of_o ignorant_a man_n yea_o as_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n so_o it_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v as_o a_o disgrace_n and_o plain_a mockery_n of_o god_n majesty_n wherefore_o see_v god_n be_v in_o heaven_n away_o with_o all_o drowsy_a and_o dead_a pray_v let_v we_o come_v with_o reverence_n in_o our_o heart_n before_o the_o lord_n 4._o again_o we_o be_v here_o to_o consider_v that_o our_o heart_n in_o prayer_n must_v mount_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o there_o be_v present_a with_o the_o lord_n psal._n 25.1_o ●_o unto_o thou_o o_o lord_n lift_v i_o up_o my_o soul_n the_o little_a child_n be_v never_o well_o but_o when_o it_o be_v in_o the_o father_n lap_n or_o under_o the_o mother_n wing_n and_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v never_o in_o better_a case_n then_o when_o in_o affection_n and_o spirit_n they_o can_v come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o their_o heavenly_a father_n and_o by_o prayer_n as_o it_o be_v to_o creep_v into_o his_o bosom_n 5._o and_o here_o we_o must_v further_o learn_v special_o to_o seek_v for_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o to_o ask_v earthly_a thing_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o serve_v to_o bring_v we_o to_o a_o everlasting_a and_o immortal_a inheritance_n in_o heaven_n to_o which_o we_o be_v call_v 1._o pet._n 1.3_o 6._o last_o whereas_o our_o father_n be_v in_o heaven_n we_o be_v to_o learn_v that_o our_o life_n on_o earth_n be_v but_o a_o pilgrimage_n &_o that_o our_o desire_n must_v be_v to_o attain_v to_o a_o better_a country_n namely_o heaven_n itself_o and_o that_o we_o must_v use_v all_o mean_n continual_o to_o come_v unto_o it_o in_o a_o word_n to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o the_o preface_n in_o it_o be_v contain_v a_o double_a stay_n or_o prop_v of_o all_o our_o prayer_n the_o one_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o god_n can_v grant_v our_o request_n because_o he_o be_v almighty_a &_o thus_o much_o be_v signify_v when_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o heaven_n the_o second_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v ready_a and_o willing_a to_o grant_v the_o same_o and_o this_o we_o be_v t●ught_v in_o the_o title_n father_n which_o serve_v to_o put_v we_o in_o ●ind_n that_o god_n accept_v our_o prayer_n joh._n 16.32_o and_o have_v a_o care_n of_o we_o in_o all_o our_o misery_n and_o necessity_n matth._n 6.32_o and_o pity_v we_o as_o much_o as_o any_o earthly_a father_n can_v pity_v his_o child_n psal._n 103.13_o yet_o must_v we_o not_o imagine_v that_o god_n will_v indeed_o give_v unto_o we_o whatsoever_o we_o do_v upon_o our_o own_o head_n fancy_n and_o desire_v but_o we_o must_v in_o our_o prayer_n have_v recourse_n to_o the_o promise_n
of_o god_n and_o according_a to_o the_o tenor_n thereof_o must_v we_o frame_v and_o square_v our_o petition_n thing_n promise_v absolute_o as_o all_o grace_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n may_v be_v ask_v absolute_o and_o thing_n promise_v with_o condition_n as_o grace_n less_o necessary_a and_o temporal_a blessing_n be_v to_o be_v ask_v with_o condition_n namely_o so_o farforth_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v for_o god_n glory_n in_o we_o and_o for_o our_o good_a except_o it_o be_v so_o that_o god_n promise_v any_o temporal_a blessing_n absolute_o as_o he_o promise_v issue_n to_o abraham_n in_o his_o old_a age_n the_o kingdom_n to_o david_n after_o saul_n a_o deliverance_n from_o captivity_n in_o babylon_n after_o 70._o year_n to_o the_o israelite_n again_o the_o preface_n serve_v to_o stir_v up_o love_n and_o fear_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o they_o that_o be_v about_o to_o pray_v love_n because_o they_o pray_v to_o a_o father_n fear_v because_o he_o be_v full_a of_o majesty_n in_o heaven_n hallow_a be_v thy_o name_n 1._o the_o coherence_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o preface_n now_o follow_v the_o petition_n they_o be_v six_o in_o number_n the_o three_o first_o concern_v god_n the_o three_o last_v ourselves_o the_o three_o former_a petition_n be_v again_o divide_v into_o two_o part_n the_o first_o concern_v god_n glory_n itself_o the_o other_o two_o the_o mean_n whereby_o god_n glory_n be_v manifest_v and_o enlarge_v among_o man_n for_o god_n name_n be_v glorify_v among_o man_n when_o his_o kingdom_n do_v come_v and_o his_o will_n be_v do_v quest._n why_o be_v this_o petition_n hallow_a be_v thy_o name_n set_v in_o the_o first_o place_n ans._n because_o god_n glory_n must_v be_v prefer_v before_o all_o thing_n because_o it_o be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o creature_n and_o of_o all_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n prov._n 16.4_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v all_o thing_n for_o his_o own_o sake_n yea_o even_o the_o wicked_a for_o the_o day_n of_o evil_a and_o from_o the_o order_n of_o the_o petition_n here_o arise_v a_o worthy_a instruction_n namely_o that_o every_o one_o in_o all_o thing_n they_o take_v in_o hand_n be_v to_o propound_v to_o themselves_o and_o to_o intend_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o reason_n be_v this_o the_o end_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v to_o all_o our_o do_n we_o be_v to_o propound_v to_o ourselves_o but_o god_n have_v appoint_v that_o the_o high_a end_n of_o all_o his_o do_n shall_v be_v his_o glory_n therefore_o our_o heart_n must_v be_v set_v to_o seek_v it_o first_o of_o all_o that_o god_n will_v have_v his_o name_n glorify_v by_o we_o appear_v in_o this_o that_o he_o punish_v those_o which_o of_o obstinacy_n set_v themselves_o to_o dishonour_v he_o or_o by_o negligence_n do_v not_o sanctify_v he_o when_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v so_o herod_n sit_v in_o his_o royalty_n make_v such_o a_o oration_n that_o the_o people_n cry_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o god_n and_o not_o of_o a_o man_n and_o immediate_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n smite_v he_o because_o he_o give_v not_o glory_n to_o god_n act._n 12._o 12._o and_o moses_n because_o he_o do_v not_o sanctify_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n therefore_o he_o come_v not_o into_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o altogether_o fail_v in_o do_v of_o it_o thus_o we_o may_v see_v by_o these_o punishment_n and_o also_o by_o the_o order_n of_o the_o petition_n that_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o prefer_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n before_o all_o thing_n else_o quest._n whether_o be_v we_o to_o prefer_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n before_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n ans._n if_o the_o cause_n stand_v thus_o that_o god_n name_n must_v be_v dishonour_v or_o our_o soul_n condemn_v we_o must_v account_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n more_o precious_a than_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n this_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o order_n of_o the_o petition_n the_o petition_n that_o concern_v god_n glory_n be_v first_o and_o the_o petition_n that_o concern_v direct_o our_o salvation_n be_v the_o five_o and_o six_o whereby_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o before_o god_n shall_v want_v any_o part_n of_o his_o glory_n we_o must_v let_v body_n and_o soul_n and_o all_o go_v that_o god_n may_v have_v all_o his_o glory_n this_o affection_n have_v moses_n exod._n 32.32_o when_o he_o say_v either_o forgive_v they_o or_o if_o thou_o will_v not_o blot_v my_o name_n out_o of_o thy_o book_n in_o this_o petition_n as_o also_o in_o the_o rest_n we_o must_v observe_v three_o thing_n the_o first_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n the_o second_o the_o want_n which_o man_n must_v learn_v to_o bewail_v the_o three_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v to_o be_v desire_v 2._o the_o meaning_n very_a few_o among_o the_o people_n can_v give_v the_o right_a meaning_n of_o the_o word_n of_o this_o prayer_n they_o pretend_v that_o see_v god_n know_v their_o good_a meaning_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o to_o say_v the_o word_n and_o to_o mean_v well_o but_o faith_n be_v one_o of_o the_o ground_n of_o prayer_n and_o there_o be_v no_o faith_n without_o knowledge_n neither_o can_v there_o be_v prayer_n without_o knowledge_n and_o therefore_o ignorant_a man_n be_v to_o learn_v the_o right_a meaning_n of_o the_o word_n name_v name_v in_o this_o place_n signify_v 1_o god_n himself_o 1._o king_n 5.5_o he_o shall_v build_v a_o house_n to_o my_o name_n 2_o his_o attribute_n as_o his_o justice_n mercy_n etc._n etc._n 3_o his_o work_n creature_n and_o judgement_n 4_o his_o word_n 5_o his_o honour_n and_o praise_n arise_v from_o all_o these_o for_o god_n be_v know_v to_o we_o by_o all_o these_o as_o man_n be_v know_v by_o their_o name_n and_o as_o all_o a_o man_n praise_n and_o glory_n lie_v in_o his_o name_n so_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v in_o these_o hallow_a to_o hallow_v be_v to_o sever_v or_o set_v apart_o any_o thing_n from_o the_o common_a use_n to_o some_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a end_n as_o the_o temple_n be_v hallow_v that_o be_v set_z apart_z to_o a_o holy_a use_n and_o the_o priest_n be_v sanctify_v that_o be_v set_z apart_z to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v sanctify_v that_o be_v set_z apart_z from_o sin_n to_o serve_v god_n in_o like_a manner_n god_n name_n be_v hallow_v when_o it_o be_v put_v apart_o from_o oblivion_n contempt_n profanation_n pollution_n blasphemy_n and_o all_o abuse_n to_o a_o holy_a reverend_a and_o honourable_a use_n whether_o we_o think_v speak_v of_o it_o or_o use_v it_o any_o manner_n of_o way_n levit._n 10.3_o ezech._n 38.23_o quest._n how_o can_v a_o sinful_a man_n hallow_v god_n name_n which_o be_v pure_a and_o holy_a in_o itself_o ans._n we_o do_v not_o here_o pray_v that_o we_o may_v make_v god_n name_n holy_a as_o though_o we_o can_v add_v something_o unto_o it_o to_o make_v it_o holy_a but_o that_o we_o may_v be_v mean_n to_o declare_v and_o make_v manifest_a to_o the_o world_n by_o the_o right_a usage_n of_o it_o that_o it_o be_v holy_a pure_a and_o honourable_a the_o like_a phrase_n be_v use_v luke_n 7._o 9_o wisdom_n be_v justify_v by_o her_o child_n that_o be_v acknowledge_v and_o declare_v to_o be_v just_a ezech._n 38.23_o the_o scope_n therefore_o of_o the_o first_o petition_n be_v a_o earnest_a desire_n that_o we_o may_v set_v forth_o god_n glory_n whatsoever_o become_v of_o we_o and_o it_o may_v be_v express_v thus_o o_o lord_n open_a our_o eye_n that_o we_o may_v aright_o know_v thou_o and_o acknowledge_v the_o greatness_n of_o thy_o power_n wisdom_n justice_n and_o mercy_n which_o appear_v in_o thy_o title_n word_n creature_n &_o judgement_n and_o grant_v that_o when_o we_o use_v any_o of_o these_o we_o may_v therein_o honour_v thou_o and_o use_v they_o reverent_o to_o thy_o glory_n 3._o the_o want_n which_o be_v to_o be_v bewail_v 1._o the_o want_n which_o we_o in_o this_o place_n be_v teach_v to_o bewail_v be_v special_o four_o the_o first_o be_v a_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a pride_n of_o our_o heart_n a_o sin_n that_o none_o or_o very_o few_o can_v see_v in_o themselves_o unless_o the_o lord_n open_v their_o eye_n when_o our_o first_o parent_n be_v tempt_v in_o paradise_n the_o devil_n tell_v they_o they_o shall_v be_v as_o god_n which_o lesson_n not_o only_o they_o but_o we_o have_v learn_v and_o we_o conceive_v of_o ourselves_o as_o little_a god_n though_o to_o the_o world_n we_o show_v it_o not_o this_o hide_a pride_n when_o other_o sin_n die_v it_o begin_v to_o get_v strength_n and_o to_o show_v itself_o and_o appear_v in_o vain_a thought_n continual_o on_o every_o occasion_n ascend_v in_o the_o mind_n as_o may_v appear_v
occasion_n 1._o the_o entrance_n to_o our_o calling_n in_o the_o morning_n 2._o the_o receive_n of_o god_n creature_n at_o noontide_n 3._o the_o go_v to_o rest_n at_o night_n again_o beside_o set_v &_o solemn_a prayer_n there_o be_v certain_a kind_n of_o short_a prayer_n which_o the_o father_n call_v eiaculationes_fw-la that_o be_v the_o lifting_n up_o of_o the_o heart_n into_o heaven_n secret_o and_o sudden_o and_o this_o kind_n of_o pray_v may_v be_v use_v as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v every_o hour_n in_o the_o day_n quest._n 5._o whether_o may_v we_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n or_o no_o ans._n we_o may_v and_o we_o may_v not_o we_o may_v if_o all_o man_n or_o mankind_n be_v take_v distributive_o or_o several_o for_o there_o be_v no_o particular_a country_n kingdom_n town_n person_n but_o we_o may_v make_v prayer_n for_o it_o and_o though_o man_n be_v atheist_n infidel_n heretic_n yea_o devil_n incarnate_a yet_o for_o any_o thing_n we_o know_v they_o may_v belong_v to_o the_o election_n of_o god_n except_o they_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o sin_n be_v very_o seldom_o &_o hardly_o discern_v of_o man_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n must_v the_o commandment_n of_o paul_n be_v understand_v i_o exhort_v therefore_o that_o first_o of_o all_o supplication_n prayer_n etc._n etc._n be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n 1._o tim._n 2.1_o we_o may_v not_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n if_o all_o man_n or_o mankind_n be_v take_v collective_o that_o be_v if_o all_o man_n be_v consider_v whole_o together_o as_o they_o make_v one_o body_n or_o company_n and_o be_v take_v as_o we_o say_v in_o gross_a for_o in_o this_o body_n or_o mass_n of_o mankind_n there_o be_v some_o though_o they_o be_v unknown_a to_o we_o yet_o i_o say_v there_o be_v some_o who_o god_n in_o his_o just_a judgement_n have_v refuse_v who_o salvation_n by_o prayer_n shall_v never_o be_v obtain_v quest._n 6._o whether_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o pray_v in_o read_v of_o a_o prayer_n answer_n it_o please_v some_o to_o move_v this_o question_n but_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n of_o it_o for_o prayer_n be_v a_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n and_o therefore_o a_o spiritual_a action_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n stand_v special_o in_o a_o desire_n of_o that_o which_o we_o want_v and_o faith_n whereby_o we_o believe_v that_o our_o desire_n shall_v be_v grant_v now_o the_o voice_n or_o utterance_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o read_v or_o otherwise_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o prayer_n but_o a_o outward_a mean_n whereby_o prayer_n be_v utter_v and_o express_v therefore_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n be_v read_v shall_v cease_v to_o be_v a_o prayer_n because_o it_o be_v read_v so_o be_v it_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o prayer_n be_v not_o want_v in_o the_o party_n read_v and_o the_o hearer_n object_n to_o read_v a_o sermon_n be_v not_o to_o preach_v and_o therefore_o to_o read_v a_o prayer_n be_v not_o to_o pray_v ans._n the_o reason_n be_v not_o like_a in_o both_o for_o the_o gift_n of_o preach_v or_o prophecy_n can_v not_o be_v show_v or_o practise_v in_o the_o read_n of_o a_o sermon_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o read_n of_o a_o sermon_n be_v not_o preach_v or_o pprophecy_n but_o the_o grace_n and_o gift_n of_o prayer_n may_v be_v show_v in_o read_v of_o a_o prayer_n otherwise_o it_o will_v go_v very_o hard_o with_o they_o that_o want_v convenient_a utterance_n by_o reason_n of_o some_o defect_n in_o the_o tongue_n or_o by_o reason_n of_o bashfulness_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o other_o of_o god_n hear_v our_o prayer_n hitherto_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o make_n of_o prayer_n to_o god_n a_o word_n or_o twain_o of_o god_n hear_v our_o prayer_n quest._n how_o many_o way_n do_v god_n hear_v man_n prayer_n ans._n two_o way_n the_o first_o in_o his_o mercy_n when_o he_o grant_n the_o request_n of_o such_o as_o call_v upon_o he_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o his_o name_n second_o he_o hear_v man_n prayer_n in_o his_o wrath_n thus_o he_o give_v the_o israelite_n quail_n according_a to_o their_o desire_n psal._n 78.29.30.31_o thus_o often_o man_n curse_v themselves_o and_o wish_v that_o they_o be_v hang_v or_o dead_a and_o according_o they_o have_v their_o wish_n quest._n 2._o why_o do_v god_n defer_v to_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o his_o servant_n ans._n first_o to_o prove_v they_o by_o delay_n second_o to_o exercise_v their_o faith_n three_o to_o make_v they_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o receive_v be_v god_n gift_n &_o not_o from_o themselves_o four_o that_o grace_n quick_o give_v may_v not_o be_v light_o esteem_v five_o that_o a_o hunger_a after_o grace_n may_v be_v sharpen_v &_o increase_v question_n 3._o after_o what_o manner_n do_v god_n hear_v his_o servant_n prayer_n answer_n two_o way_n first_o by_o grant_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v ask_v according_a to_o his_o will_n second_o by_o deny_v the_o thing_n desire_v and_o by_o give_v something_o proportional_a to_o it_o thus_o god_n deny_v temporary_a blessing_n and_o in_o the_o room_n thereof_o give_v eternal_a in_o heaven_n thus_o he_o refuse_v to_o remove_v the_o cross_n from_o his_o servant_n and_o give_v in_o stead_n thereof_o strength_n and_o patience_n christ_n pray_v that_o the_o cup_n may_v be_v remove_v it_o be_v not_o remove_v yet_o he_o in_o his_o manhood_n be_v enable_v to_o bear_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n when_o paul_n pray_v three_o time_n that_o the_o prick_n in_o the_o flesh_n may_v be_v remove_v it_o be_v answer_v my_o strength_n be_v sufficient_a for_o thou_o quest._n 4._o why_o do_v not_o god_n always_o hear_v man_n prayer_n ans._n there_o be_v many_o cause_n of_o this_o the_o first_o because_o oftentimes_o we_o know_v not_o to_o ask_v as_o we_o ought_v math._n 20.22_o the_o second_o because_o we_o ask_v amiss_o jam._n 4.3_o the_o three_o because_o otherwhiles_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o ask_v though_o they_o be_v good_a in_o themselves_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o good_a unto_o we_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n be_v withhold_v 2._o cor._n 12.7_o the_o last_o because_o god_n will_v for_o some_o long_a time_n defer_v the_o grant_n of_o that_o which_o we_o ask_v that_o he_o may_v stir_v up_o our_o faith_n and_o hope_n and_o our_o diligence_n in_o prayer_n and_o that_o we_o may_v the_o better_a esteem_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n when_o we_o have_v they_o and_o show_v ourselves_o more_o thankful_a to_o the_o reader_n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n have_v set_v down_o the_o sum_n of_o many_o of_o his_o prayer_n they_o be_v very_o gracious_a and_o heavenly_a and_o i_o have_v here_o set_v they_o down_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v they_o and_o in_o thy_o prayer_n follow_v they_o 16._o i_o cease_v not_o to_o give_v thanks_o for_o you_o make_v mention_n of_o you_o in_o my_o prayer_n 17._o that_o the_o god_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o father_n of_o glory_n may_v give_v unto_o you_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o of_o revelation_n in_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o he_o 18._o the_o eye_n of_o your_o mind_n be_v enlighten_v that_o you_o may_v know_v what_o the_o hope_n be_v of_o his_o call_n and_o what_o the_o riches_n be_v of_o his_o glorious_a inheritance_n in_o the_o saint_n 19_o and_o what_o be_v the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o his_o power_n in_o we_o that_o believe_v according_a to_o the_o work_n of_o his_o mighty_a power_n 20._o which_o he_o wrought_v in_o christ_n when_o he_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o set_v he_o at_o his_o right_a hand_n in_o heavenly_a place_n the_o exposition_n in_o this_o excellent_a prayer_n we_o be_v to_o mark_v two_o thing_n the_o first_o to_o who_o it_o be_v make_v the_o second_o be_v the_o matter_n for_o the_o first_o it_o be_v make_v to_o god_n the_o father_n who_o be_v describe_v by_o two_o title_n the_o first_o the_o god_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n namely_o as_o christ_n be_v man_n for_o as_o christ_n be_v god_n he_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o father_n the_o second_o the_o father_n of_o glory_n that_o be_v a_o glorious_a father_n and_o he_o be_v so_o call_v to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o earthly_a father_n the_o matter_n of_o the_o prayer_n stand_v on_o two_o principal_a point_n first_o he_o ask_v of_o god_n the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n whereby_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v enable_v to_o discern_v out_o of_o the_o word_n in_o every_o business_n which_o they_o take_v in_o hand_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o word_n or_o deed_n what_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v and_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v leave_v undo_v as_o also_o the_o circumstance_n the_o time_n place_n manner_n of_o do_v any_o thing_n second_o he_o pray_v for_o the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n whereby_o
the_o faithful_a have_v their_o whole_a estate_n before_o god_n reveal_v unto_o they_o according_a to_o the_o word_n the_o thing_n itself_o be_v otherwise_o secret_a and_o hide_a 1._o cor._n 2,9,10,12_o further_o the_o work_n of_o this_o spirit_n in_o the_o godly_a be_v twofold_a the_o one_o concern_v god_n himself_o the_o other_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n which_o respect_v god_n himself_o be_v a_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o father_n or_o of_o christ._n now_o to_o acknowledge_v god_n the_o father_n be_v not_o only_o to_o know_v and_o confess_v that_o he_o be_v a_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a but_o also_o to_o be_v resolve_v in_o conscience_n that_o he_o be_v a_o father_n to_o i_o in_o particular_a second_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o in_o general_a a_o saviour_n of_o the_o elect_a but_o that_o he_o be_v in_o special_a my_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n the_o second_o work_n of_o this_o spirit_n be_v a_o illumination_n of_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o mind_n to_o see_v and_o know_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o they_o that_o do_v believe_v and_o they_o be_v two_o the_o first_o be_v life_n eternal_a which_o be_v describe_v by_o five_o argument_n 1._o it_o be_v the_o ephesian_a hope_n that_o be_v the_o thing_n hope_v for_o in_o this_o life_n 2._o it_o be_v the_o hope_n of_o the_o call_n of_o god_n because_o in_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v offer_v and_o man_n be_v call_v to_o wait_v for_o the_o same_o 3._o a_o inheritance_n proper_o to_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n and_o by_o he_o to_o all_o that_o shall_v believe_v 4._o the_o excellency_n because_o it_o be_v a_o rich_a and_o glorious_a inheritance_n 5._o last_o it_o be_v make_v proper_a to_o the_o saint_n the_o second_o thing_n be_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n whereby_o sin_n be_v mortify_v the_o corrupt_a nature_n renew_v and_o mighty_o strengthen_v in_o temptation_n this_o power_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o two_o argument_n the_o first_o be_v the_o subject_n or_o person_n in_o who_o this_o power_n be_v make_v manifest_a in_o they_o that_o believe_v because_o none_o can_v feel_v this_o but_o they_o which_o apprehend_v christ_n by_o faith_n the_o second_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o manifest_v this_o power_n in_o they_o which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o work_n of_o his_o mighty_a power_n which_o he_o show_v in_o christ._n and_o that_o be_v in_o three_o thing_n first_o in_o put_v all_o his_o enemy_n under_o his_o foot_n v_o 2._o second_o in_o raise_v he_o from_o death_n three_o in_o place_v he_o at_o his_o right_a hand_n now_o therefore_o paul_n pray_v that_o this_o wonderful_a power_n of_o god_n which_o do_v show_v forth_o itself_o in_o the_o head_n christ_n may_v likewise_o show_v itself_o in_o the_o member_n of_o christ._n first_o in_o tread_v satan_n and_o sin_n under_o their_o foot_n rom._n 16.10_o second_o in_o raise_v they_o from_o sin_n as_o out_o of_o a_o grave_n to_o holiness_n of_o life_n three_o in_o advance_v they_o in_o the_o time_n appoint_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n in_o heaven_n ephes._n 3_o 14._o for_o this_o cause_n i_o bow_v my_o knee_n unto_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n 15._o of_o who_o be_v name_v the_o whole_a family_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n 16._o that_o he_o will_v grant_v you_o according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n that_o ye●_n may_v be_v strengthen_v by_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o inner_a man_n 17._o that_o christ_n may_v dwell_v in_o your_o heart_n by_o faith_n 18._o that_o you_o be_v root_v and_o ground_v in_o love_n may_v be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v with_o all_o saint_n what_o be_v the_o breadth_n and_o length_n and_o depth_n and_o height_n 19_o and_o know_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n which_o pass_v knowledge_n that_o you_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o all_o fullness_n of_o god_n 20._o unto_o he_o therefore_o that_o be_v able_a to_o do●_n exceed_v abundant_o above_o all_o that_o we_o ask_v or_o think_v according_a to_o the_o power_n that_o work_v in_o we_o 21._o be_v praise_n in_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n jesus_n throughout_o all_o generation_n for_o ever_o amen_n the_o exposition_n these_o word_n contain_v two_o part_n a_o prayer_n and_o a_o thanksgiving_n in_o the_o prayer_n these_o point_n be_v to_o be_v mark_v first_o the_o gesture_n i_o bow_v my_o knee_n whereby_o paul_n signify_v his_o humble_a submission_n to_o god_n in_o prayer_n second_o to_o who_o he_o pray_v to_o the_o father_n who_o be_v describe_v by_o two_o title_n the_o first_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o by_o nature_n as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o as_o he_o be_v man_n by_o personal_a union_n the_o other_o title_n of_o who_o the_o whole_a family_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v name_v in_o which_o word_n be_v set_v down_o a_o description_n of_o the_o church_n first_o it_o be_v a_o family_n because_o it_o be_v the_o company_n of_o god_n elect_v child_n under_o the_o government_n of_o one_o father_n 1._o tim._n 3.15_o it_o be_v call_v the_o house_n of_o god_n eph._n 2.19_o they_o that_o believe_v be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o household_n of_o god_n second_o the_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v note_v namely_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n depart_v and_o saint_n live_v on_o earth_n three_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v name_v of_o the_o father_n of_o christ_n because_o as_o the_o father_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o father_n of_o this_o family_n so_o also_o this_o family_n be_v call_v by_o he_o gen._n 6.2_o dan._n 9.80_o three_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o prayer_n stand_v of_o four_o most_o worthy_a point_n the_o first_o be_v strength_n to_o bear_v the_o cross_n and_o to_o resist_v spiritual_a temptation_n v_o 16._o where_o the_o strength_n be_v set_v out_o by_o diverse_a argument_n first_o that_o it_o be_v the_o mere_a gift_n of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v grant_v you_o second_o the_o cause_n of_o strength_n by_o his_o spirit_n three_o the_o subject_n or_o place_n where_o this_o strength_n must_v be_v in_o the_o inner_a man_n that_o be_v in_o the_o whole_a man_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o he_o be_v renew_a by_o grace_n eph._n 6.14_o the_o second_o be_v the_o dwell_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o heart_n by_o faith_n faith_n be_v when_o a_o man_n be_v serious_o humble_v for_o his_o sin_n be_v further_a in_o conscience_n persuade_v and_o resolve_v of_o the_o pardon_n of_o they_o and_o of_o reconciliation_n to_o god_n now_o where_o this_o persuasion_n be_v in_o deed_n there_o follow_v necessary_o christ_n dwelling_n in_o the_o heart_n which_o stand_v in_o two_o thing_n the_o first_o be_v the_o roll_a and_o order_v of_o the_o thought_n affection_n and_o desire_n of_o the_o heart_n according_a to_o his_o will_n as_o a_o master_n rule_v in_o his_o house_n the_o second_o be_v the_o continuance_n of_o his_o rule_n for_o he_o can_v be_v say_v to_o dwell_v in_o a_o place_n who_o rule_v in_o it_o but_o for_o a_o day_n the_o three_o be_v the_o knowledge_n and_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o infinite_a greatness_n of_o god_n love_n in_o christ_n a_o effect_n of_o the_o former_a v_o 18_o 19_o the_o word_n be_v thus_o explain_v root_v and_o ground_v here_o the_o love_n of_o god_n wherewith_o he_o love_v the_o elect_a be_v as_o a_o root_n and_o foundation_n of_o all_o god_n benefit_n election_n vocation_n justification_n and_o glorification_n man_n be_v root_v and_o ground_v in_o love_n when_o god_n spirit_n assure_v their_o heart_n of_o god_n love_n and_o do_v give_v they_o some_o inward_a sense_n and_o feel_n of_o it_o for_o than_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v sensible_o put_v into_o the_o root_n and_o lay_v on_o the_o foundation_n with_o all_o saint_n paul_n desire_v this_o benefit_n not_o only_o to_o the_o ephesian_n but_o also_o to_o all_o the_o faithful_a with_o they_o what_o be_v the_o length_n the_o breadth_n here_o be_v a_o speech_n borrow_v from_o the_o geometrician_n and_o it_o signify_v the_o absolute_a greatness_n or_o infinitnes_n of_o god_n love_n and_o that_o it_o be_v like_o a_o world_n which_o for_o length_n breadth_n height_n and_o depth_n be_v endless_a here_o note_v the_o order_n or_o receive_v grace_n first_o christ_n dwell_v in_o the_o heart_n by_o faith_n second_o then_o come_v a_o sense_n and_o feel_n of_o god_n love_n as_o it_o be_v by_o certain_a drop_n thereof_o three_o after_o this_o arise_v a_o plentiful_a knowledge_n and_o apprehension_n of_o god_n love_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o pour_v out_o of_o a_o sea_n into_o a_o man_n heart_n that_o for_o greatness_n have_v neither_o bottom_n nor_o bank_n and_o know_v the_o love_n of_o
brief_o consider_v the_o effect_n of_o predestination_n prepare_v for_o all_o the_o elect_a without_o which_o they_o can_v in_o no_o wise_a come_v to_o the_o end_n and_o therefore_o the_o first_o effect_n of_o predestination_n be_v our_o lord_n jesus_n with_o his_o obedience_n merit_n death_n resurrection_n glory_n namely_o in_o that_o respect_n he_o be_v make_v mediator_n between_o god_n the_o father_n and_o we_o and_o the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a and_o therefore_o in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o he_o be_v also_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o other_o grace_n and_o benefit_n which_o come_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o free_a predestination_n of_o god_n for_o the_o effect_n of_o predestination_n be_v so_o order_v among_o themselves_o that_o the_o first_o which_o go_v before_o be_v the_o cause_n efficient_a or_o if_o we_o will_v so_o speak_v the_o material_a cause_n of_o the_o latter_a and_o those_o that_o follow_v therefore_o see_v christ_n be_v the_o first_o effect_n of_o predestination_n he_o be_v also_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o other_o effect_n by_o who_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o they_o &c_n the_o apostle_n therefore_o say_v very_o well_o to_o the_o ephesian_n in_o the_o first_o place_n say_v he_o we_o be_v elect_v in_o christ_n nam_o as_o in_o the_o head_n to_o be_v his_o member_n second_o he_o write_v that_o we_o be_v predestinate_a to_o adoption_n by_o christ_n namely_o to_o obtain_v it_o for_o we_o be_v adopt_v into_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n the_o first_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n and_o by_o make_v we_o partaker_n of_o his_o sonship_n we_o be_v real_o make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n yea_o and_o we_o be_v also_o endue_v with_o his_o spirit_n too_o that_o we_o may_v be_v bear_v anew_o three_o 4●6_n say_v he_o we_o be_v make_v acceptable_a and_o belove_a unto_o the_o father_n and_o his_o belove_a son_n namely_o christ._n fou●thly_o that_o we_o have_v our_o redemption_n in_o the_o same_o christ_n by_o his_o blood_n and_o have_v obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o all_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n as_o well_o in_o heaven_n as_o in_o earth_n in_o a_o word_n the_o apostle_n show_v there_o as_o also_o else_o where_o that_o whatsoever_o benefit_n we_o do_v or_o shall_v hereafter_o obtain_v count_v from_o our_o eternal_a election_n even_o unto_o our_o glorification_n all_o those_o we_o now_o do_v and_o shall_v obtain_v hereafter_o in_o christ_n and_o by_o christ._n therefore_o whosoever_o be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n beside_o this_o that_o they_o be_v elect_v in_o christ_n they_o be_v also_o predestinate_a to_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o have_v fellowship_n with_o he_o that_o they_o may_v by_o he_o enjoy_v all_o other_o benefit_n 30._o the_o second_o benefit_n of_o god_n and_o effect_n of_o our_o predestination_n be_v our_o effectual_a call_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o his_o gospel_n in_o which_o the_o elect_a be_v only_o call_v because_o it_o be_v by_o the_o purpose_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v give_v we_o in_o christ._n and_o a_o effectual_a call_n be_v know_v by_o the_o effect_n two_o of_o which_o proceed_v direct_o from_o ●t_z a_o hearty_a kind_n of_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o the_o conceive_v of_o it_o with_o a_o very_a great_a constant_a and_o continual_a delight_n and_o a_o true_a and_o sure_a belief_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n thence_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n say_v 8.47_o who_o be_v of_o god_n say_v he_o namely_o by_o election_n and_o effectual_a call_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n very_o willing_o and_o from_o his_o heart_n and_o that_o continual_o but_o you_o hear_v not_o because_o you_o be_v not_o of_o god_n and_o this_o call_n be_v wrought_v not_o only_o of_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n as_o it_o be_v in_o all_o that_o be_v of_o year_n but_o also_o and_o that_o chief_o with_o the_o inward_a inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n while_o that_o the_o father_n draw_v they_o by_o his_o spirit_n who_o he_o will_v have_v to_o come_v to_o christ_n which_o also_o be_v say_v to_o be_v do_v in_o infant_n for_o this_o call_n be_v the_o begin_n of_o salvation_n even_o in_o this_o life_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o apostle_n manner_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o make_v mention_n of_o this_o call_n name_v all_o the_o faithful_a 1.1_o the_o saint_n call_v therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o all_o they_o which_o be_v elect_v in_o christ_n must_v also_o at_o length_n effectual_o be_v call_v and_o draw_v to_o christ._n after_o a_o effectual_a call_n follow_v faith_n the_o effect_n of_o predestination_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v peculiar_a unto_o ●he_n elect_v and_o without_o which_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o please_v god_n 11.6_o for_o by_o it_o we_o be_v ingraft_v into_o christ_n and_o be_v make_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o without_o faith_n no_o man_n can_v be_v sau●d_v and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o effect_n of_o predestination_n the_o apostle_n plain_o show_v 7.25_o when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v obtain_v mercy_n namely_o in_o god_n eternal_a predestination_n that_o he_o may_v believe_v wherefore_o whosoever_o be_v predestinate_a to_o obtain_v eternal_a life_n in_o christ_n and_o by_o christ_n they_o be_v also_o elect_v to_o have_v the_o very_a gift_n of_o faith_n therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o at_o length_n they_o shall_v believe_v in_o christ._n the_o four_o benefit_n be_v justification_n that_o be_v a_o free_a pardon_v of_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o imputation_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n for_o it_o follow_v faith_n because_o whosoever_o be_v endue_v with_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n be_v also_o justify_v 1.4_o and_o that_o justification_n be_v a_o effect_n of_o predestination_n the_o apostle_n show_v when_o he_o put_v it_o after_o call_v before_o which_o he_o set_v predestination_n and_o when_o he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v elect_v in_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o spot_n or_o blame_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o that_o this_o be_v not_o do_v while_o we_o be_v in_o this_o world_n but_o by_o the_o pardon_v of_o all_o our_o fault_n and_o by_o the_o imputation_n of_o his_o perfect_a obedience_n wherefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o all_o the_o elect_a shall_v be_v justify_v and_o be_v take_v for_o most_o pure_a and_o without_o blame_n in_o god_n presence_n with_o justification_n be_v join_v regeneration_n and_o sanctification_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n namely_o while_o we_o be_v make_v new_a creature_n by_o he_o and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n too_o not_o only_o by_o adoption_n but_o also_o by_o regeneration_n for_o when_o christ_n justify_v we_o he_o do_v not_o only_o forgive_v we_o our_o unrighteousness_n &_o impute_v his_o righteousness_n to_o we_o but_o also_o he_o take_v from_o we_o our_o stony_a heart_n &_o give_v we_o a_o fleshy_a heart_n of_o his_o own_o and_o he_o strip_v we_o of_o our_o old_a man_n &_o put_v on_o his_o new_a man_n last_o he_o take_v away_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o make_v we_o partaker_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n 3.6_o and_o so_o indeed_o of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n he_o make_v we_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o his_o brethren_n too_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v that_o we_o be_v predestinate_v to_o adoption_n by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o elect_v that_o we_o may_v be_v holy_a without_o blame_n and_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v call_v spirit_n therefore_o the_o elect_a to_o eternal_a life_n must_v needs_o be_v beget_v anew_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n in_o christ._n hence_o issue_v the_o six_o effect_n of_o predestination_n which_o be_v heedful_o to_o be_v regard_v the_o love_n of_o righteo●unesse_fw-fr and_o the_o detestation_n of_o sin_n for_o in_o regeneration_n the_o affection_n be_v principal_o change_v namely_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o flesh_n into_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o spirit_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n say_v 5._o that_o they_o which_o be_v bear_v anew_o do_v walk_v according_a to_o the_o spirit_n and_o not_o after_o the_o flesh_n and_o not_o to_o savour_n the_o thing_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o chief_a affection_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v the_o love_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v the_o concupiscence_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o contrariwise_o the_o hatred_n of_o righteousness_n and_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o father_n but_o of_o the_o world_n therefore_o the_o chief_a affection_n of_o regeneration_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o love_n of_o righteousness_n and_o of_o the_o
the_o end_n in_o faith_n and_o a_o true_a confession_n of_o christ_n join_v with_o a_o manifest_a care_n to_o live_v a_o godly_a life_n and_o a_o desire_n to_o glorify_v he_o for_o this_o gift_n be_v bestow_v upon_o all_o the_o elect_a as_o the_o lord_n promise_v by_o jeremie_n 23.40_o i_o will_v put_v my_o fear_n into_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o may_v not_o depart_v from_o i_o and_o when_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o their_o life_n they_o shall_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o heavenly_a glory_n until_o such_o time_n as_o their_o body_n also_o be_v raise_v up_o they_o may_v take_v full_a possession_n of_o eternal_a life_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o it_o be_v very_o certain_a that_o those_o which_o be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n be_v also_o predestinate_a to_o use_v those_o mean_n by_o which_o as_o by_o certain_a step_n and_o stair_n they_o climb_v into_o that_o heavenly_a dwell_a place_n and_o therefore_o that_o we_o be_v predestinate_a to_o these_o mean_n namely_o faith_n justification_n and_o good_a work_n because_o we_o be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n according_a to_o the_o purpose_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n wherefore_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o doctrine_n also_o of_o the_o pelagian_n be_v confute_v as_o touch_v predestination_n to_o life_n doctrine_n by_o our_o faith_n and_o work_v which_o god_n foresee_v we_o shall_v do_v whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a therefore_o god_n do_v predestine_v we_o to_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n because_o he_o do_v choose_v we_o to_o eternal_a life_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v not_o i_o obtain_v mercy_n because_o i_o be_v faithful_a or_o because_o i_o shall_v be_v faithful_a 2._o but_o that_o i_o may_v be_v faithful_a neither_o say_v he_o that_o we_o be_v elect_v in_o christ_n because_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n but_o that_o we_o may_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n neither_o do_v he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v create_v in_o christ_n because_o we_o do_v or_o shall_v do_v good_a work_n but_o we_o be_v create_v to_o good_a work_n 11_o which_o god_n prepare_v that_o we_o may_v walk_v in_o they_o last_o he_o say_v not_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n appear_v because_o we_o be_v to_o live_v sober_o just_o and_o godly_a but_o that_o it_o therefore_o appear_v that_o we_o deny_v all_o ungodliness_n and_o the_o lust_n of_o this_o world_n may_v live_v sober_o just_o and_o godly_a i●_n this_o present_a world_n we_o see_v therefore_o that_o by_o this_o doctrine_n that_o wicked_a opinion_n be_v overthrow_v which_o teach_v that_o we_o do_v prevent_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o our_o merit_n which_o god_n foresee_v and_o on_o the_o contrary_a here_o we_o see_v how_o foul_o the_o bellygod_n of_o this_o world_n be_v deceive_v which_o reason_n thus_o if_o we_o be_v predestinate_a to_o eternal_a life_n and_o our_o predestination_n be_v certain_a and_o unchangeable_a what_o need_v we_o endeavour_v ourselves_o believe_v or_o do_v good_a work_n for_o howsoever_o it_o fall_v out_o and_o howesoever_o the_o elect_n do_v live_v undoubted_o they_o can_v perish_v because_o they_o be_v predestinate_a to_o eternal_a life_n alas_o poor_a wretch_n they_o see_v not_o that_o they_o sever_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v conjoin_v namely_o the_o end_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o end_n &_o that_o they_o break_v the_o chain_n which_o in_o no_o wise_a either_o can_v or_o must_v be_v loose_v whilst_o that_o they_o sever_v their_o call_n &_o justification_n yea_o and_o faith_n too_o &_o good_a work_n from_o predestination_n and_o glorification_n as_o though_o god_n do_v glorify_v they_o who_o he_o do_v predestinate_a before_o he_o call_v and_o justify_v they_o yea_o and_o before_o they_o can_v believe_v and_o show_v their_o quick_a and_o lively_a faith_n by_o work_n contrariwise_o let_v we_o learn_v what_o our_o duty_n be_v if_o any_o be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n they_o also_o be_v predestinate_a to_o the_o mean_n by_o which_o they_o come_v unto_o it_o and_o we_o believe_v as_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v that_o we_o be_v predestinate_a to_o eternal_a life_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v also_o believe_v that_o we_o have_v be_v elect_v to_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n that_o by_o they_o as_o by_o certain_a step_n we_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o eternal_a life_n and_o therefore_o so_o far_o must_v we_o be_v from_o neglect_v faith_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o good_a work_n &_o of_o a_o holy_a life_n that_o contrariwise_o it_o be_v rather_o our_o duty_n to_o keep_v faith_n in_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o to_o be_v conversant_a in_o good_a work_n which_o god_n have_v prepare_v that_o we_o may_v walk_v in_o they_o and_o because_o we_o can_v neither_o attain_v to_o the_o end_n nor_o the_o mean_n that_o bring_v we_o thereunto_o of_o ourselves_o therefore_o it_o be_v our_o part_n to_o crave_v they_o at_o god_n hand_n by_o prayer_n that_o he_o will_v give_v we_o faith_n and_o a_o care_n to_o do_v good_a work_n and_o increase_v they_o in_o us._n neither_o must_v we_o only_o ask_v they_o but_o also_o certain_o trust_v that_o we_o shall_v obtain_v they_o for_o christ_n his_o cause_n for_o if_o for_o all_o they_o which_o be_v predestinate_v to_o eternal_a life_n god_n have_v prepare_v faith_n by_o which_o they_o may_v believe_v and_o good_a work_n to_o walk_v in_o therefore_o if_o we_o believe_v as_o by_o god_n commandment_n we_o be_v bind_v that_o we_o be_v in_o christ_n elect_v to_o eternal_a glory_n we_o must_v also_o be_v persuade_v that_o before_o we_o depart_v hence_o he_o will_v give_v we_o true_a repentance_n increase_v true_a faith_n inflame_v we_o with_o love_n last_o that_o he_o will_v minister_v unto_o we_o abundant_o all_o thing_n in_o christ_n to_o obtain_v the_o end_n yea_o this_o confidence_n also_o and_o prayer_n it_o be_v one_o effect_n of_o predestination_n by_o which_o we_o get_v the_o rest_n therefore_o this_o doctrine_n we_o must_v hold_v that_o predestination_n to_o eternal_a life_n do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o mean_n of_o obtain_v it_o but_o rather_o establish_v they_o and_o therefore_o both_o these_o principle_n be_v true_a namely_o that_o the_o elect_v to_o life_n can_v perish_v and_o unless_o a_o man_n believe_v in_o christ_n and_o persevere_v unto_o the_o end_n in_o this_o faith_n work_v by_o love_n 3.36_o he_o shall_v perish_v the_o reason_n be_v because_o in_o predestination_n the_o mean_n &_o the_o end_n of_o it_o be_v so_o join_v together_o that_o the_o one_o can_v not_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o other_o wherefore_o whosoever_o hold_v not_o the_o mean_n unto_o the_o end_n amongst_o which_o faith_n be_v one_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o be_v never_o predestinate_a and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o perish_v as_o on_o the_o contrary_a he_o which_o hold_v faith_n must_v needs_o be_v save_v so_o the_o truth_n of_o these_o proposition_n be_v evident_a he_o which_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n have_v eternal_a life_n contrariwise_o he_o which_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o son_n the_o anger_n of_o god_n remain_v upon_o he_o because_o as_o a_o constant_a faith_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o election_n so_o obstinate_a infidelity_n be_v a_o token_n of_o reprobation_n finis_fw-la bradford_n answer_v to_o careless_a careless_a i_o be_o trouble_v with_o fear_n that_o my_o sin_n be_v not_o pardon_v bradford_n they_o be_v for_o god_n have_v give_v thou_o a_o penitent_a and_o believe_a heart_n that_o be_v a_o heart_n which_o desire_v to_o repent_v and_o believe_v for_o such_o a_o one_o be_v take_v of_o he_o he_o accept_v the_o will_n for_o the_o deed_n for_o a_o penitent_a and_o believe_a heart_n indeed_o trin-uni_a deo_fw-la gloria_fw-la a_o direction_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o tongve_n according_a to_o god_n word_n print_a by_o john_n legate_n printer_n to_o the_o university_n of_o cambridge_n 1600._o to_o the_o reader_n christian_n reader_n lamentable_a and_o fearful_a be_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o tongue_n among_o all_o sort_n &_o degree_n of_o man_n ever●_n where_o hence_o daily_o arise_v manifold_a sin_n against_o god_n and_o ●nnu●erable_a scandal_n and_o grievance_n to_o our_o brethren_n it_o will_v make_v a_o man_n heart_n to_o bleed_v to_o hear_v and_o consider_v how_o swear_v blaspheme_v curse_v speak_v ra●ling_a backbiting_a slander_v chide_v quarrel_v contend_v jest_a mock_v flatter_a lie_v dissemble_a vain_a and_o idle_a talk_a overflow_n in_o all_o place●_n so_o as_o man_n which_o fear_v god_n have_v better_o be_v any_o where_o then_o in_o the_o company_n of_o most_o man_n well_o thou_o be_v thou_o a_o man_n which_o have_v make_v little_a conscience_n of_o thy_o speech_n and_o talk_n repent_v serious_o of_o this_o sin_n and_o amend_v thy_o life_n lest_o for_o the_o abuse_n of_o thy_o tongue_n thou_o cry_v with_o dives_fw-la in_o hell_n send_v
conscience_n with_o other_o gift_n of_o god_n spirit_n which_o be_v the_o earnest_n of_o their_o salvation_n the_o second_o degree_n be_v in_o this_o life_n when_o the_o body_n go_v to_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o soul_n be_v carry_v by_o the_o angel_n into_o heaven_n the_o three_o be_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n at_o the_o last_o judgement_n when_o body_n and_o soul_n reunite_v do_v joint_o enter_v into_o eternal_a happiness_n in_o heaven_n now_o of_o these_o three_o degree_n death_n itself_o be_v join_v with_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n be_v the_o second_o which_o also_o contain_v in_o it_o two_o worthy_a step_n to_o life_n the_o first_o be_v a_o freedom_n from_o all_o misery_n which_o have_v their_o end_n in_o death_n for_o though_o man_n in_o this_o life_n be_v subject_a to_o manifold_a danger_n by_o sea_n and_o land_n as_o also_o to_o sundry_a ache_n pain_n and_o disease_n as_o fever_n and_o consumption_n etc._n etc._n yet_o when_o death_n come_v there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o all_o again_o so_o long_o as_o man_n live_v in_o this_o world_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v they_o do_v in_o some_o part_n lie_v in_o bondage_n under_o original_a corruption_n and_o the_o re●nants_n thereof_o which_o be_v doubt_n of_o god_n providence_n unbelief_n pride_n of_o heart_n ignorance_n covetousness_n ambition_n envy_n hatred_n lust_n and_o such_o like_a sin_n which_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n unto_o death_n and_o to_o be_v in_o subjection_n to_o sin_n on_o this_o manner_n be_v a_o misery_n of_o all_o misery_n therefore_o paul_n when_o he_o be_v tempt_v unto_o sin_n by_o his_o corruption_n 12.7_o call_v the_o very_a temptation_n the_o buffet_n of_o satan_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o prick_n or_o thorn_n wound_v his_o flesh_n and_o pain_n he_o at_o the_o very_a heart_n again_o in_o another_o place_n weary_v with_o his_o own_o corruption_n he_o complain_v that_o he_o be_v sell_v under_o sin_n and_o he_o cry_v out_o o_o miserable_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o this_o body_n of_o death_n 119.136_o david_n say_v that_o his_o eye_n gush_v out_o with_o river_n of_o tear_n when_o other_o man_n sin_v against_o god_n how_o much_o more_o than_o be_v he_o grieve_v for_o the_o sin_n wherewith_o he_o himself_o be_v overtake_v in_o this_o life_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o very_a hell_n for_o a_o man_n that_o have_v but_o a_o spark_n of_o grace_n to_o be_v exercise_v turmoil_v and_o tempt_v with_o the_o inborn_a corruption_n and_o rebellion_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n and_o if_o a_o man_n will_v devise_v a_o torment_n for_o such_o as_o fear_v god_n and_o desire_n to_o walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n he_o can_v not_o devise_v a_o great_a than_o this_o for_o this_o cause_n bless_v be_v the_o day_n of_o death_n which_o bring_v with_o it_o a_o freedom_n from_o all_o sin_n whatsoever_o for_o when_o we_o die_v the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n be_v quite_o abolish_v and_o sanctification_n be_v accomplish_v last_o it_o be_v a_o great_a misery_n that_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v constrain_v in_o this_o world_n to_o live_v and_o converse_v in_o the_o company_n of_o the_o wicked_a as_o sheep_n be_v mingle_v with_o goat_n which_o strike_v they_o annoy_v their_o pasture_n and_o muddy_a their_o water_n hereupon_o david_n cry_v out_o 19.4_o woe_n be_v i_o that_o i_o r●maine_n in_o meshech_n and_o dwell_v in_o the_o tent_n of_o ke●ar_n when_o elias_n see_v that_o ahab_n and_o jesabel_n have_v plant_v idolatry_n in_o israel_n and_o that_o they_o seek_v his_o life_n also_o he_o go_v apart_o into_o the_o wilderness_n and_o desire_v to_o die_v but_o this_o misery_n also_o be_v end_v in_o the_o day_n of_o death_n in_o as_o much_o as_o death_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n to_o sort_n and_o single_a out_o those_o that_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n from_o all_o ungodly_a man_n in_o this_o most_o wretched_a world_n furthermore_o this_o exceed_a benefit_n come_v by_o death_n that_o it_o do_v not_o only_o abolish_v the_o misery_n which_o present_o be_v upon_o we_o but_o also_o prevent_v those_o which_o be_v to_o come_v 1._o the_o righteous_a say_v the_o prophet_n isaiah_n perish_v and_o no_o man_n consider_v it_o in_o his_o heart_n and_o merciful_a man_n be_v take_v away_o and_o no_o man_n understand_v that_o the_o righteous_a be_v take_v away_o for_o the_o evil_a to_o come_v example_n of_o this_o we_o have_v in_o josias_n 20._o because_o say_v the_o lord_n thy_o heart_n do_v melt_v and_o thou_o have_v humble_v thyself_o before_o the_o lord_n when_o thou_o hear_v what_o i_o speak_v against_o this_o place_n etc._n etc._n behold_v therefore_o i_o will_v gather_v thou_o to_o thy_o father_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v put_v in_o thy_o grave_n in_o peace_n and_o thy_o eye_n shall_v not_o see_v all_o the_o evil_a whi●h_n i_o will_v bring_v upon_o this_o place_n and_o paul_n say_v that_o among_o the_o corinthian_n some_o be_v asleep_a 11.23_o that_o be_v dead_a that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v condemn_v with_o the_o world_n thus_o much_o of_o freedom_n from_o misery_n which_o be_v the_o first_o benefit_n that_o come_v by_o death_n and_o the_o first_o step_n to_o life_n now_o follow_v the_o second_o which_o be_v that_o death_n give_v a_o entrance_n to_o the_o soul_n that_o it_o may_v come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o everliving_a god_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o all_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n in_o heaven_n the_o worthiness_n of_o this_o benefit_n make_v the_o death_n of_o the_o righteous_a to_o be_v no_o death_n but_o rather_o a_o blessing_n to_o be_v wish_v of_o all_o man_n the_o consideration_n of_o this_o make_v paul_n to_o say_v 1._o i_o desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v but_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o desire_n that_o follow_v in_o the_o next_o word_n namely_o that_o by_o this_o dissolution_n he_o may_v come_v to_o be_v with_o christ._n when_o the_o queen_n of_o sheba_n see_v all_o salomon_n wisdom_n and_o the_o house_n that_o he_o have_v build_v and_o the_o meat_n of_o his_o table_n and_o the_o sit_v of_o his_o servant_n and_o the_o order_n of_o his_o minister_n and_o their_o apparel_n etc._n etc._n she_o say_v 10.8_o happy_a be_v thy_o man_n happy_a be_v these_o thy_o servant_n which_o stand_v ever_o before_o thou_o and_o hear_v thy_o wisdom_n much_o more_o than_o may_v we_o say_v that_o they_o be_v ten_o thousand_o fold_n happy_a which_o stand_v not_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o a_o earthly_a king_n but_o before_o the_o king_n of_o king_n the_o lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o at_o his_o right_a hand_n enjoy_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o moses_n have_v be_v renown_v in_o all_o age_n for_o this_o that_o god_n vouchsafe_v he_o but_o so_o much_o favour_n as_o to_o see_v his_o hinder_a part_n at_o his_o request_n o_o then_o what_o happiness_n be_v this_o to_o see_v the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n of_o god_n face_n to_o face_n and_o to_o have_v eternal_a fellowship_n with_o god_n our_o father_n christ_n our_o redeemer_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n our_o comforter_n and_o to_o live_v with_o the_o bless_a saint_n and_o angel_n in_o heaven_n for_o ever_o thus_o now_o the_o three_o point_n be_v manifest_a namely_o in_o what_o respect_v death_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o life_n it_o may_v be_v here_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n unsatisfied_a will_v yet_o further_o reply_n and_o say_v that_o howsoever_o in_o death_n the_o soul_n of_o man_n enter_v into_o heaven_n yet_o their_o body_n though_o they_o have_v be_v tender_o keep_v for_o meat_n drink_n and_o apparel_n and_o have_v sleep_v many_o a_o night_n in_o bed_n of_o down_o must_v lie_v in_o dark_a and_o loathsome_a grave_n and_o there_o be_v waste_v and_o consume_v by_o worm_n answ._n all_o this_o be_v true_a indeed_o but_o all_o be_v nothing_o if_o so_o be_v it_o we_o will_v but_o consider_v aright_o of_o our_o grave_n as_o we_o ought_v we_o must_v not_o judge_v of_o our_o grave_n as_o they_o appear_v to_o the_o bodily_a eye_n but_o we_o must_v look_v upon_o they_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n and_o consider_v they_o as_o they_o be_v alter_v and_o change_v by_o the_o death_n and_o burial_n of_o christ_n who_o have_v vanquish_v death_n upon_o the_o cross_n pursue_v he_o afterward_o to_o his_o own_o den_n and_o foil_v he_o there_o and_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o power_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v christ_n in_o his_o own_o death_n have_v bury_v our_o death_n and_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o burial_n as_o sweet_a incense_n have_v sweeten_v and_o perfume_v our_o grave_n and_o make_v they_o of_o stink_a and_o loathsome_a cabbine_n 52.2_o to_o become_v princely_a palace_n and_o bed_n of_o most_o sweet_a and_o happy_a rest_n far_o more_o excellent_a than_o bed_n of_o down_o and_o
bear_v they_o in_o their_o arm_n as_o nurse_n do_v young_a child_n and_o to_o be_v as_o a_o guard_n unto_o they_o against_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n 93._o and_o all_o this_o be_v verify_v special_o in_o sickness_n at_o which_o time_n the_o holy_a angel_n be_v not_o only_o present_a with_o such_o as_o fear_v god_n but_o ready_a also_o to_o receive_v and_o to_o carry_v their_o soul_n into_o heaven_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o lazarus_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o first_o duty_n which_o a_o sick_a man_n be_v to_o perform_v unto_o himself_o namely_o that_o he_o must_v by_o all_o mean_v possible_a arm_n &_o strengthen_v himself_o against_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n now_o follow_v the_o second_o duty_n which_o be_v concern_v the_o body_n and_o that_o be_v that_o all_o sick_a person_n must_v be_v careful_a to_o preserve_v health_n and_o life_n till_o god_n do_v whole_o take_v it_o away_o for_o paul_n say_v 14.7,8_o none_o of_o we_o live_v to_o himself_o neither_o do_v any_o die_n to_o himself_o for_o whether_o we_o live_v we_o live_v unto_o the_o lord_n or_o whether_o we_o die_v we_o die_v unto_o the_o lord_n whether_o we_o live_v therefore_o or_o die_v we_o be_v the_o lord_n for_o this_o cause_n we_o may_v not_o do_v with_o our_o life_n as_o we_o will_v but_o we_o must_v reserve_v the_o whole_a disposition_n thereof_o unto_o god_n for_o who_o glory_n we_o be_v to_o live_v and_o die_v and_o this_o temporal_a life_n be_v a_o most_o precious_a jewel_n and_o as_o the_o common_a say_n be_v life_n be_v very_o sweet_a because_o it_o be_v give_v man_n for_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v have_v some_o space_n of_o time_n wherein_o he_o may_v use_v all_o good_a mean_n to_o attain_v to_o life_n everlasting_a life_n be_v not_o bestow_v on_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v spend_v our_o day_n in_o our_o lust_n and_o vain_a pleasure_n but_o that_o we_o may_v have_v liberty_n to_o come_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n and_o from_o the_o bondage_n of_o sin_n into_o the_o glorious_a liberty_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n special_a care_n must_v be_v have_v of_o preservation_n of_o life_n till_o god_n do_v call_v we_o hence_o in_o the_o preserve_n of_o life_n two_o thing_n must_v be_v consider_v the_o mean_n and_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o mean_n the_o mean_n be_v good_a and_o wholesome_a physic_n which_o though_o it_o be_v despise_v of_o many_o as_o a_o thing_n unprofitable_a and_o needle_n yet_o must_v it_o be_v esteem_v as_o a_o ordinance_n and_o blessing_n of_o god_n this_o appear_v because_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v give_v approvation_n unto_o it_o in_o the_o scripture_n when_o it_o be_v the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n to_o restore_v life_n unto_o king_n ezekias_n 20.7_o a_o lump_n of_o dry_a fig_n by_o the_o prophet_n appointment_n be_v lay_v to_o his_o boil_v and_o he_o be_v heal_v indeed_o this_o cure_n be_v in_o some_o sort_n miraculous_a because_o he_o be_v make_v whole_a in_o the_o space_n of_o two_o or_o three_o day_n and_o the_o three_o day_n he_o go_v up_o to_o the_o temple_n yet_o the_o bunch_n of_o fig_n be_v a_o natural_a and_o ordinary_a medicine_n or_o plaster_n serve_v to_o soften_v &_o ripen_v tumor_n or_o swell_n in_o the_o flesh_n 7._o and_o the_o samaritan_n be_v commend_v for_o the_o bind_n up_o and_o for_o the_o pour_v in_o of_o wine_n and_o oil_n into_o the_o wound_n of_o the_o man_n that_o lay_v wound_v between_o jerusalem_n and_o jerico_fw-la now_o this_o deal_n of_o his_o be_v a_o right_a practice_n of_o physic_n 88_o for_o the_o wine_n serve_v to_o cleanse_v the_o wound_n and_o to_o ease_v the_o pain_n within_o &_o the_o oil_n serve_v to_o supple_a the_o flesh_n &_o to_o assuage_v the_o pain_n without_o and_o the_o prophet_n esai_n seem_v to_o commend_v this_o physic_n when_o he_o say_v 1.6_o from_o the_o soole_n of_o the_o foot_n there_o be_v nothing_o whole_a therein_o but_o wound_n and_o swell_n &_o sore_n full_a of_o corruption_n they_o have_v not_o be_v wrap_v nor_o bind_v up_o nor_o mollify_v with_o oil_n and_o whereas_o god_n do_v not_o command_v circumcision_n of_o child_n before_o the_o eight_o day_n he_o follow_v a_o rule_n of_o physic_n observe_v in_o all_o age_n that_o the_o life_n of_o the_o child_n be_v very_o uncerten_a till_o the_o first_o seven_o day_n be_v expire_v as_o we_o may_v see_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o child_n which_o david_n have_v by_o bathsabe_n which_o die_v the_o seven_o day_n and_o upon_o the_o very_a same_o ground_n heathen_a man_n use_v not_o to_o name_v their_o child_n before_o the_o eight_o day_n 1._o thus_o than_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o use_n of_o physic_n be_v lawful_a and_o commendable_a furthermore_o that_o physic_n may_v be_v well_o apply_v to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o health_n special_a care_n must_v be_v have_v to_o make_v choice_n of_o such_o physician_n as_o be_v know_v to_o be_v well_o learned_a and_o man_n of_o experience_n as_o also_o of_o good_a conscience_n &_o good_a religion_n for_o as_o in_o other_o calling_n so_o in_o this_o also_o there_o be_v sundry_a abuse_n which_o may_v endanger_v the_o life_n and_o the_o health_n of_o man_n some_o venture_n upon_o the_o bare_a inspection_n of_o the_o urine_n without_o further_a direction_n or_o knowledge_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o sick_a to_o prescribe_v and_o minister_v as_o shall_v seem_v best_a unto_o they_o but_o the_o learned_a in_o this_o faculty_n do_v plain_o avouch_v 3._o that_o this_o kind_n of_o deal_n tend_v rather_o to_o kill_v then_o to_o cure_v and_o that_o sundry_a man_n be_v indeed_o kill_v thereby_o for_o judgement_n by_o the_o urine_n be_v most_o deceitful_a the_o water_n of_o he_o that_o be_v sick_a of_o a_o pestilent_a fever_n even_o unto_o death_n look_v for_o substance_n and_o colour_n as_o the_o water_n of_o a_o whole_a man_n 41._o and_o so_o do_v the_o water_n of_o they_o that_o be_v sick_a of_o a_o quartane_a or_o of_o any_o other_o intermit_a fever_n special_o if_o they_o have_v use_v good_a diet_n from_o the_o beginning_n as_o also_o of_o they_o that_o have_v the_o pleuresie_n or_o the_o inflammation_n of_o the_o lung_n or_o the_o squinancy_n oftentimes_o when_o they_o be_v near_o death_n now_o then_o consider_v the_o water_n of_o such_o as_o be_v at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n appear_v as_o the_o urine_n of_o hail_n and_o sound_a man_n one_o and_o the_o same_o urine_n may_v foresignifie_v both_o life_n and_o death_n and_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o diverse_a nay_o of_o contrary_a disease_n a_o thin_a crude_a and_o pale_a urine_n in_o they_o that_o be_v in_o health_n be_v a_o token_n of_o want_n of_o digestion_n but_o in_o they_o that_o be_v sick_a of_o a_o sharp_a or_o burn_a ague_n it_o betoken_v the_o frenzy_n and_o be_v a_o certain_a sign_n of_o death_n again_o other_o there_o be_v that_o think_v it_o a_o small_a matter_n to_o make_v experiment_n of_o their_o devise_a medicine_n upon_o the_o body_n of_o their_o patient_n whereby_o the_o health_n which_o they_o hope_v for_o be_v either_o much_o hinder_v or_o much_o decay_v three_o there_o be_v other_o which_o minister_v no_o physic_n at_o any_o time_n or_o use_v phlebotomy_n without_o the_o direction_n of_o judicial_a astrology_n but_o if_o they_o shall_v follow_v this_o course_n always_o they_o must_v needs_o kill_v many_o a_o man_n put_v the_o case_n that_o a_o man_n full_o body_v be_v take_v with_o a_o pleuresie_n the_o moon_n be_v in_o leone_n what_o must_v be_v do_v the_o learned_a in_o this_o art_n say_v he_o must_v present_o be_v let_v blood_n but_o by_o astrology_n a_o stay_n must_v be_v make_v till_o the_o moon_n be_v remove_v from_o leo_n the_o house_n of_o the_o sun_n but_o by_o that_o time_n the_o imposthume_n will_v be_v so_o much_o increase_v by_o the_o gather_n together_o of_o the_o humour_n that_o it_o can_v neither_o be_v dissolve_v nor_o ripen_v and_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o sick_a party_n want_v help_n in_o time_n shall_v die_v either_o by_o inflammation_n or_o by_o the_o consumption_n of_o the_o lung_n again_o 25._o when_o a_o man_n be_v sick_a of_o the_o squinancy_n or_o of_o the_o fever_n call_v synachus_fw-la medic_fw-la the_o moon_n then_o be_v in_o the_o malignant_a aspect_n with_o any_o of_o the_o infortunate_a planet_n as_o astrologer_n use_v to_o speak_v if_o let_v of_o blood_n be_v defer_v till_o the_o moon_n be_v free_v from_o the_o foresay_a aspect_n the_o party_n die_v in_o the_o mean_a season_n therefore_o they_o be_v far_o wide_a that_o minister_v purgation_n and_o let_v blood_n no_o otherwise_o then_o they_o be_v counsel_v by_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o star_n
offering_n say_v he_o thou_o will_v not_o but_o ear_n thou_o have_v pierce_v unto_o man_n then_o say_v lo_o i_o come_v i_o desire_v to_o do_v thy_o will_n o_o god_n yea_o thy_o law_n be_v within_o my_o heart_n psal._n 40._o 7._o the_o second_o be_v conformity_n in_o the_o cross_n two_o way_n for_o first_o as_o he_o bear_v his_o own_o cross_n to_o the_o place_n of_o execution_n so_o must_v we_o as_o good_a disciple_n of_o christ_n deny_v ourselves_o take_v up_o all_o the_o cross_n and_o affliction_n that_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n shall_v lay_v upon_o us._n again_o we_o must_v become_v like_a unto_o he_o in_o the_o crucify_a and_o mortify_v the_o mass_n and_o body_n of_o sin_n which_o we_o carry_v about_o we_o gal._n 5.24_o they_o which_o be_v christ_n have_v crucify_v the_o flesh_n with_o the_o affection_n and_o lust_n thereof_o we_o must_v do_v as_o the_o jew_n do_v we_o must_v set_v up_o the_o cross_n and_o gybbet_n whereon_o we_o be_v to_o fasten_v and_o hang_v this_o flesh_n of_o we_o that_o be_v the_o sin_n and_o corruption_n that_o cleave_v and_o stick_v unto_o we_o and_o by_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n wound_v it_o even_o to_o death_n this_o be_v do_v we_o must_v yet_o go_v further_o and_o labour_n by_o experience_n to_o see_v and_o feel_v the_o very_a death_n of_o it_o and_o to_o lay_v it_o as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o grave_n never_o to_o rise_v again_o and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v daily_o cast_v new_a mould_n upon_o it_o the_o three_o be_v a_o spiritual_a resurrection_n whereby_o we_o shall_v by_o god_n grace_n use_v mean_n that_o we_o may_v every_o day_n more_o and_o more_o come_v out_o of_o our_o sin_n as_o out_o of_o a_o loathfome_a grave_n to_o live_v unto_o god_n in_o newene_n of_o life_n as_o christ_n rise_v from_o his_o grave_n and_o because_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n for_o a_o man_n to_o come_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n or_o rather_o dungeon_n of_o his_o sin_n this_o work_n can_v not_o be_v do_v at_o once_o but_o by_o degree_n as_o god_n shall_v give_v grace_n consider_v we_o lie_v by_o nature_n dead_a in_o our_o sin_n and_o stink_n in_o they_o as_o loathsome_a carrion_n first_o we_o must_v begin_v to_o stir_v ourselves_o as_o a_o man_n that_o come_v out_o of_o a_o swoon_n awaken_v by_o the_o word_n and_o voice_n of_o christ_n sound_v in_o our_o deaf_a ear_n second_o we_o must_v raise_v up_o our_o mind_n to_o a_o better_a state_n and_o condition_n as_o we_o use_v to_o raise_v up_o our_o body_n after_o this_o we_o must_v put_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n first_fw-mi one_o hand_n than_o the_o other_o this_o do_v we_o must_v do_v our_o endeavour_n as_o it_o be_v upon_o our_o knee_n at_o the_o least_o to_o put_v one_o foot_n out_o of_o this_o sepulchre_n of_o sin_n the_o rather_o when_o we_o see_v ourselves_o to_o have_v one_o foot_n of_o the_o body_n in_o the_o grave_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n we_o may_v be_v whole_o deliver_v from_o all_o bond_n of_o corruption_n the_o four_o part_n be_v a_o spiritual_a ascension_n into_o heaven_n by_o a_o continual_a elevation_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o mind_n to_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n as_o paul_n say_v have_v your_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n and_o if_o you_o be_v risenwith_o christ_n seekè_n thing_n that_o be_v above_o conformity_n in_o moral_a duty_n be_v either_o general_a or_o special_a general_n be_v to_o be_v holy_a as_o he_o be_v holy_a rom._n 8.29_o those_o who_o he_o know_v before_o he_o have_v predestinate_a to_o be_v like_o the_o image_n of_o his_o son_n that_o be_v not_o only_o in_o the_o cross_n but_o also_o in_o holiness_n and_o glory_n 1._o joh._n 3._o he_o which_o have_v this_o hope_n purify_v himself_o even_o as_o he_o be_v pure_a special_a conformity_n be_v chief_o in_o four_o virtue_n faith_n love_n meekness_n humility_n we_o must_v be_v like_o he_o in_o faith_n for_o as_o he_o when_o he_o apprehend_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o the_o very_a pang_n of_o hell_n be_v upon_o he_o whole_o stay_v himself_o upon_o the_o aid_n help_v protection_n and_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o father_n even_o to_o the_o last_o so_o must_v we_o by_o a_o true_a &_o lively_a faith_n depend_v whole_o on_o god_n mercy_n in_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v with_o both_o our_o hand_n in_o peace_n in_o trouble_n in_o life_n &_o in_o the_o very_a pang_n of_o death_n and_o we_o must_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a let_v our_o hold_n go_v no_o though_o we_o shall_v feel_v ourselves_o descend_v to_o hell_n we_o must_v be_v like_o he_o in_o meekness_n matth._n 11._o v._n 28._o learn_v of_o i_o that_o i_o be_o meek_a and_o lowly_a his_o meekness_n show_v itself_o in_o the_o patient_a bear_n of_o all_o injury_n and_o abuse_n offer_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o sinful_a and_o wretched_a man_n and_o in_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n without_o grudge_v or_o repine_v and_o with_o submission_n to_o his_o father_n will_n in_o all_o thing_n now_o the_o more_o we_o follow_v he_o herein_o the_o more_o shall_v we_o be_v conformable_a to_o he_o in_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n philip_n 3._o 10._o three_o he_o must_v be_v our_o example_n in_o love_n he_o love_v his_o enemy_n more_o than_o himself_o eph._n 5.4_o walk_v in_o love_n even_o as_o christ_n love_v we_o and_o have_v give_v himself_o for_o we_o a_o oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o sweet_a smell_a savour_n unto_o god_n the_o like_a love_n ought_v we_o to_o show_v by_o do_v service_n to_o all_o man_n in_o the_o compass_n of_o our_o calling_n and_o by_o be_v all_o thing_n to_o all_o man_n as_o paul_n be_v that_o we_o may_v do_v they_o all_o the_o good_a we_o can_v both_o for_o body_n and_o soul_n 1._o cor._n 9.19_o last_o we_o must_v follow_v christ_n in_o humility_n whereof_o he_o be_v a_o wonderful_a spectacle_n in_o that_o be_v god_n he_o become_v man_n for_o we_o &_o of_o a_o man_n become_v a_o worm_n that_o be_v tread_v under_o foot_n that_o he_o may_v save_v man_n phil._n 2.5_o let_v the_o same_o mind_n be_v in_o you_o that_o be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n humble_v himself_o and_o become_v obedient_a to_o the_o death_n even_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o here_o we_o must_v observe_v that_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n have_v something_o more_o in_o it_o then_o any_o other_o example_n have_v or_o can_v have_v for_o it_o do_v not_o only_o show_v we_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v as_o the_o example_n of_o other_o man_n do_v but_o it_o be_v a_o remedy_n against_o many_o vice_n and_o a_o motive_n to_o many_o good_a duty_n first_o of_o all_o the_o serious_a consideration_n of_o this_o that_o the_o very_a son_n of_o god_n himself_o suffer_v all_o the_o pain_n and_o torment_n of_o hell_n on_o the_o cross_n for_o our_o sin_n be_v the_o proper_a &_o most_o effectual_a mean_n to_o stir_v up_o our_o heart_n to_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o they_o and_o that_o this_o thing_n may_v come_v to_o pass_v every_o man_n must_v be_v settle_v without_o doubt_n that_o he_o be_v the_o man_n that_o crucify_v christ_n that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v blame_v as_o well_o as_o judas_n herod_n pontius_n pilate_n and_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o his_o sin_n shall_v be_v the_o nail_n the_o spear_n and_o the_o thorn_n that_o pierce_v he_o when_o this_o meditation_n begin_v to_o take_v place_n bitterness_n of_o spirit_n with_o wail_v and_o mourn_v take_v place_n in_o like_a manner_n zach._n 12._o 10._o and_o they_o shall_v look_v upon_o he_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v and_o they_o shall_v lamem_fw-la for_o he_o as_o one_o lament_v for_o his_o only_a son_n peter_n in_o his_o first_o sermon_n strike_v the_o jew_n as_o with_o a_o thunder_n clap_n from_o heaven_n when_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o you_o have_v crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n so_o as_o the_o same_o time_n three_o thousand_o man_n be_v prick_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o say_v man_n and_o brethren_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v to_o be_v save_v again_o if_o christ_n for_o our_o sin_n shed_v his_o heart_n blood_n and_o if_o our_o sin_n mad●_n he_o sweat_v water_n and_o blood_n oh_o then_o why_o shall_v not_o we_o ourselves_o shed_v bitter_a tear_n &_o why_o will_v not_o our_o heart_n bleed_v for_o they_o he_o that_o find_v himself_o so_o dull_a and_o harden_v that_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o humble_v he_o be_v in_o a_o lamentable_a case_n for_o there_o be_v no_o faith_n in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n effectual_a in_o he_o as_o yet_o second_o the_o meditation_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o
less_o importance_n and_o not_o utter_v precise_o in_o command_a term_n do_v only_o declare_v and_o show_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v or_o conditional_o require_v this_o or_o that_o with_o respect_n to_o the_o punishment_n on_o this_o manner_n if_o any_o person_n do_v this_o or_o that_o than_o he_o shall_v forfeit_v thus_o or_o thus_o this_o kind_n of_o law_n bind_v especial_o to_o the_o punishment_n and_o that_o in_o the_o very_a intent_n of_o the_o lawgiver_n and_o he_o that_o be_v ready_a in_o omit_v the_o law_n to_o pay_v the_o fine_a or_o punishment_n be_v not_o to_o be_v charge_v with_o sin_n before_o god_n the_o penalty_n be_v answerable_a to_o the_o loss_n that_o come_v by_o the_o neglect_n of_o the_o law_n here_o a_o question_n may_v be_v demand_v whether_o a_o man_n that_o have_v take_v his_o oath_n to_o keep_v all_o the_o law_n or_o order_n of_o any_o town_n or_o corporation_n and_o yet_o afterward_o omit_v the_o do_v of_o some_o of_o they_o be_v perjure_a or_o no._n the_o answer_n may_v be_v this_o that_o the_o law_n of_o every_o society_n and_o corporation_n must_v be_v distinguish_v some_o be_v very_o weighty_a as_o i_o have_v say_v be_v of_o the_o very_a foundation_n and_o state_n of_o a_o body_n so_o as_o it_o can_v not_o well_o stand_v without_o they_o and_o whosoever_o witting_o and_o willing_o break_v any_o of_o these_o they_o be_v good_a and_o lawful_a can_v not_o be_v free_v from_o perjury_n again_o there_o be_v law_n of_o lesser_a importance_n that_o tend_v only_a to_o maintain_v decent_a order_n and_o comeliness_n in_o the_o society_n of_o man_n and_o they_o be_v of_o that_o nature_n that_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o corporation_n or_o town_n may_v stand_v without_o they_o and_o whosoever_o upon_o occasion_n omit_v the_o do_v of_o any_o of_o these_o be_v not_o therefore_o perjure_a so_o be_v it_o he_o carry_v a_o loyal_a mind_n and_o be_v content_a to_o pay_v the_o fine_a or_o penalty_n for_o such_o kind_n of_o order_n and_o constitution_n require_v first_o of_o all_o obedience_n and_o if_o that_o be_v omit_v they_o require_v a_o mulct_n or_o fine_a which_o if_o it_o be_v willing_o pay_v the_o law_n be_v satisfy_v thus_o we_o see_v how_o far_o forth_o man_n law_n bind_v conscience_n the_o use_n of_o this_o point_n be_v this_o i._o hence_o we_o learn_v that_o the_o immunity_n of_o the_o popish_a clergy_n whereby_o they_o take_v themselves_o exempt_v from_o civil_a court_n and_o from_o civil_a authority_n in_o criminal_a cause_n have_v no_o warrant_n because_o god_n commandment_n bind_v every_o man_n whatsoever_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o magistrate_n rom._n 13.1_o let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n ii_o hence_o we_o see_v also_o what_o notorious_a rebel_n those_o be_v that_o be_v bear_v subject_n of_o this_o land_n yet_o choose_v rather_o to_o die_v then_o to_o acknowledge_v as_o they_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n the_o queen_n majesty_n to_o be_v supreme_a governor_n under_o god_n in_o all_o cause_n &_o over_o all_o person_n iii_o last_o we_o be_v teach_v hereby_o to_o be_v willing_a to_o give_v subjection_n obedience_n reverence_n and_o all_o other_o duty_n to_o magistrate_n whether_o they_o be_v superior_a or_o inferior_a yea_o with_o chearefulnes_n to_o pay_v tax_n and_o subsidy_n and_o all_o such_o lawful_a charge_n as_o be_v appoint_v by_o they_o give_v to_o cesar_n that_o which_o be_v caesar_n &_o to_o god_n that_o which_o be_v god_n give_v to_o all_o man_n their_o duty_n tribute_n to_o who_o tribute_n custom_n to_o who_o custom_n rom._n 13.7_o bind_v now_o follow_v the_o oath_n which_o be_v either_o assertorie_n or_o promissorie_a assertorie_n by_o which_o a_o man_n avouch_v that_o a_o thing_n be_v do_v or_o not_o do_v promissorie_a by_o which_o a_o man_n promise_v to_o do_v a_o thing_n or_o not_o to_o do_v it_o of_o both_o these_o i_o mean_v to_o speak_v but_o special_o of_o the_o second_o and_o here_o two_o point_n must_v be_v consider_v the_o first_o by_o whant_n mean_v a_o oath_n bind_v the_o second_o when_o it_o bind_v a_o oath_n bind_v by_o virtue_n of_o such_o particular_a commandment_n as_o require_v the_o keep_n of_o oath_n lawful_o take_v num._n 30.3_o whosoever_o swear_v a_o oath_n to_o bind_v his_o soul_n by_o a_o bond_n he_o shall_v not_o break_v his_o word_n but_o shall_v do_v according_a to_o all_o that_o proceed_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n this_o be_v so_o a_o question_n may_v be_v make_v whether_o the_o oath_n of_o infidel_n bind_v conscience_n and_o by_o what_o virtue_n consider_v they_o neither_o know_v the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o true_a god_n ans._n they_o 93._o do_v bind_v in_o conscience_n for_o example_n jacob_n and_o laban_n make_v a_o covenant_n confirm_v by_o oath_n jacob_n swear_v by_o the_o true_a god_n laban_n by_o the_o god_n of_o nachor_n that_o be_v by_o his_o idol_n now_o jacob_n though_o he_o approve_v not_o the_o form_n of_o this_o oath_n yet_o he_o accept_v it_o for_o a_o civil_a bond_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o no_o doubt_n though_o laban_n believe_v not_o god_n word_n reveal_v to_o the_o patriarch_n yet_o he_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o keep_v this_o oath_n even_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o though_o he_o know_v not_o the_o true_a god_n yet_o he_o repute_v the_o false_a god_n of_o nachor_n to_o be_v the_o true_a god_n gen._n 31.53_o again_o if_o a_o lawful_a oath_n by_o virtue_n of_o god_n commandment_n bind_v conscience_n than_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v long_o err_v in_o that_o she_o teach_v and_o maintain_v that_o governor_n 89._o as_o namely_o the_o pope_n and_o other_o inferior_a bishop_n have_v power_n to_o give_v relaxation_n and_o dispensation_n not_o only_o for_o oath_n unlawful_a from_o which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v sufficient_o free_v we_o though_o they_o shall_v never_o give_v absolution_n but_o from_o a_o true_a and_o lawful_a oath_n make_v witting_o and_o willing_o without_o error_n or_o deceit_n of_o a_o thing_n honest_a and_o possible_a as_o when_o the_o pope_n free_v the_o subject_n of_o this_o land_n as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v from_o their_o swear_a allegiance_n and_o loyalty_n to_o which_o they_o be_v bind_v not_o only_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n but_o also_o by_o a_o solemn_a and_o particular_a oath_n to_o the_o supremacy_n which_o none_o ever_o deem_v unlawful_a but_o such_o as_o carry_v traitor_n heart_n now_o this_o erroneous_a divinity_n will_v easy_o be_v revoke_v if_o man_n do_v but_o consider_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o oath_n one_o part_n whereof_o be_v invocation_n in_o which_o we_o pray_v unto_o god_n first_o that_o he_o will_v become_v a_o witness_n unto_o we_o that_o we_o speak_v the_o truth_n and_o purpose_n not_o to_o deceive_v second_o if_o we_o fail_v and_o break_v our_o promise_n that_o he_o will_v take_v revenge_n upon_o we_o and_o in_o both_o these_o petition_n we_o bind_v ourselves_o immediate_o to_o god_n himself_o and_o god_n again_o who_o be_v the_o ordainer_n of_o the_o oath_n accept_v this_o bond_n and_o knit_v it_o by_o his_o commandment_n till_o it_o be_v accomplish_v hence_o it_o follow_v that_o no_o creature_n can_v have_v power_n to_o untie_v the_o bond_n of_o a_o oath_n that_o be_v true_o and_o lawful_o a_o oath_n unless_o we_o will_v exalt_v the_o creature_n above_o god_n himself_o and_o the_o jewish_a teacher_n give_v better_a counsel_n when_o they_o command_v the_o people_n to_o perform_v their_o oath_n to_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o prevent_n of_o perjury_n and_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o that_o gainesay_v they_o not_o math._n 5.33_o next_o let_v we_o consider_v the_o time_n when_o a_o oath_n bind_v or_o bind_v not_o a_o oath_n bind_v then_o when_o it_o be_v make_v of_o thing_n certain_a and_o possible_a in_o truth_n justice_n judgement_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n &_o the_o good_a of_o our_o neighbour_n quest._n i._o whether_o do_v a_o oath_n bind_v conscience_n if_o by_o the_o keep_n of_o it_o there_o follow_v loss_n and_o hindrance_n ans._n if_o it_o be_v of_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v lawful_a and_o the_o damage_n be_v private_a to_o he_o that_o swear_v then_o do_v it_o bind_v conscience_n for_o example_n a_o man_n make_v a_o purchase_n of_o land_n at_o the_o sea_n side_n his_o bargain_n be_v confirm_v only_o by_o oath_n and_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o before_o he_o do_v enter_v possession_n the_o sea_n break_v in_o and_o drown_v a_o part_n of_o that_o purchase_n now_o he_o be_v in_o conscience_n to_o stand_v to_o his_o bargain_n because_o the_o thing_n be_v lawful_a and_o the_o damage_n be_v private_a and_o great_a reverence_n must_v be_v have_v of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n which_o have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o bargain_n make_v david_n
of_o john_n baptist._n again_o christ_n say_v that_o they_o know_v not_o the_o hour_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n math._n 24._o 23._o much_o less_o do_v the_o saint_n know_v all_o thing_n in_o god_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v under_o the_o altar_n where_o they_o cry_v 6.9_o how_o long_a lord_n holy_a and_o true_a will_v thou_o not_o revenge_v our_o blood_n as_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o day_n of_o their_o full_a deliverance_n and_o the_o jew_n in_o affliction_n confess_v abraham_n be_v ignorant_a of_o they_o and_o their_o estate_n isa_n 63.16_o reason_n iii_o math._n 4.10_o christ_n refuse_v so_o much_o as_o to_o bow_v the_o knee_n to_o satan_n upon_o this_o ground_n because_o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v hence_o it_o be_v that_o peter_n will_v not_o suffer_v cornelius_n so_o much_o as_o to_o kneel_v unto_o he_o though_o cornelius_n intend_v not_o to_o honour_v he_o as_o god_n therefore_o neither_o saint_n nor_o angel_n be_v to_o be_v honour_v so_o much_o as_o with_o the_o bow_n of_o the_o knee_n if_o it_o carry_v but_o the_o least_o signification_n of_o divine_a or_o religious_a honour_n reason_n iv._n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n august_n we_o honour_v the_o saint_n with_o charity_n and_o not_o by_o servitude_n neither_o do_v we_o erect_v church_n to_o they_o and_o let_v it_o not_o be_v religion_n for_o we_o to_o worship_v dead_a man_n 79._o and_o they_o be_v to_o be_v honour_v for_o imitation_n and_o not_o to_o be_v adore_v for_o religion_n epiphan_n neither_o tecla_n nor_o any_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v for_o that_o ancient_a error_n may_v not_o over-rule_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v leave_v the_o live_a god_n and_o adore_v thing_n make_v by_o he_o again_o let_v marie_n be_v in_o honour_n let_v the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v adore_v let_v none_o adore_v marie_n i_o mean_v neither_o woman_n nor_o man_n again_o marie_n be_v beutifull_a holy_a and_o honour_v yet_o not_o to_o adoration_n when_o julian_n object_v to_o the_o christian_n that_o they_o worship_v their_o martyr_n as_o god_n cyrill_n grant_n the_o memory_n and_o honour_n of_o they_o but_o deny_v their_o adoration_n and_o of_o invocation_n he_o make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o ambrose_n on_o ro._n 1._o be_v any_o so_o mad_a that_o he_o will_v give_v to_o the_o earl_n the_o honour_n of_o the_o king_n yet_o these_o man_n do_v not_o think_v themselves_o guilty_a who_o give_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n name_n to_o a_o creature_n and_o leave_v the_o lord_n adore_v their_o fellow_n servant_n as_o though_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n more_o reserve_v for_o god_n objection_n of_o papist_n i._o gen._n 48.16_o let_v the_o angel_n that_o keep_v i_o bless_v thy_o child_n here_o say_v they_o it_o be_v a_o prayer_n make_v to_o angel_n ans._n by_o the_o angel_n be_v mean_v christ_n who_o be_v call_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n malac._n 3.1_o and_o the_o angel_n that_o guide_v israel_n in_o the_o wilderness_n 1._o cor._n 10.9_o compare_v with_o exod._n 23.20_o object_n 11._o exod._n 23.13_o moses_n pray_v that_o god_n will_v respect_v his_o people_n for_o abraham_n sake_n and_o for_o isaac_n and_o israel_n his_o servant_n which_o be_v not_o then_o live_v ans._n moses_n pray_v god_n to_o be_v merciful_a to_o the_o people_n not_o for_o the_o intercession_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n but_o for_o his_o covenant_n sake_n which_o he_o have_v make_v with_o they_o psal._n 123.10,11_o again_o by_o popish_a doctrine_n the_o father_n depart_a know_v not_o the_o estate_n of_o man_n upon_o earth_n neither_o do_v they_o pray_v for_o they_o because_o than_o they_o be_v not_o in_o heaven_n but_o in_o limbo_n patrum_fw-la iii_o object_n one_o live_a man_n make_v intercession_n to_o god_n for_o another_o therefore_o much_o more_o do_v the_o saint_n in_o glory_n that_o be_v fill_v with_o love_n pray_v to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o we_o pray_v to_o they_o no_o otherwise_o then_o we_o desire_v live_v man_n to_o pray_v for_o us._n ans._n the_o reason_n be_v naught_o for_o we_o have_v a_o commandment_n one_o live_a man_n to_o pray_v for_o another_o and_o to_o desire_v other_o to_o pray_v for_o we_o but_o there_o be_v no_o warrant_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o we_o to_o desire_v the_o prayer_n of_o man_n depart_v second_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o these_o two_o to_o request_v our_o friend_n either_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n or_o by_o letter_n to_o pray_v for_o we_o and_o by_o invocation_n to_o request_v they_o that_o be_v absent_a from_o we_o &_o depart_v this_o life_n to_o pray_v for_o we_o for_o this_o be_v indeed_o a_o worship_n in_o which_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o a_o power_n to_o hear_v and_o help_v all_o that_o call_v upon_o they_o at_o what_o place_n or_o time_n soever_o yea_o though_o they_o be_v not_o present_a in_o the_o place_n in_o which_o they_o be_v worship_v and_o consequent_o the_o see_v of_o the_o heart_n presence_n in_o all_o place_n and_o infinite_a power_n to_o help_v all_o that_o pray_v unto_o they_o which_o thing_n agree_v to_o no_o creature_n but_o god_n alone_o three_o when_o one_o live_v man_n request_v a_o other_o to_o pray_v from_o he_o he_o only_o make_v he_o his_o companion_n and_o fellow_n member_n in_o his_o prayer_n make_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o mediator_n christ_n but_o when_o man_n invocate_v saint_n in_o heaven_n they_o be_v then_o absent_a they_o make_v they_o more_o than_o fellow_n member_n even_o mediator_n between_o christ_n and_o they_o the_o xv._n point_n of_o intercession_n of_o saint_n our_o consent_n our_o consent_n with_o they_o i_o will_v set_v down_o in_o two_o conclusion_n conclus_fw-la i._o the_o saint_n depart_v pray_v unto_o god_n by_o give_v thanks_o unto_o he_o for_o their_o own_o redemption_n &_o for_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n rev._n 5._o 8._o the_o four_o beast_n and_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n fall_v down_o before_o the_o lamb_n 9_o and_o they_o sing_v a_o new_a song_n thou_o be_v worthy_a to_o take_v the_o book_n and_o to_o open_v the_o seal_v thereof_o because_o thou_o be_v kill_v and_o have_v redeem_v we_o to_o god_n .13_o and_o all_o the_o creature_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n hear_v i_o say_v praise_n and_o honour_n and_o glory_n and_o power_n be_v unto_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o unto_o the_o lamb_n for_o evermore_o ii_o conclus_fw-la the_o saint_n depart_v pray_v general_o for_o the_o state_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n reu._n 6.9_o and_o i_o see_v under_o the_o altar_n the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o be_v kill_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o they_o cry_v 10._o how_o long_a lord_n holy_a and_o true_a do_v thou_o not_o judge_v and_o aveuge_v our_o blood_n on_o they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n whereby_o we_o see_v they_o desire_v a_o final_a deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o destruction_n of_o the_o enemy_n thereof_o that_o they_o themselves_o with_o all_o the_o people_n of_o god_n may_v be_v advance_v to_o fullness_n of_o glory_n in_o body_n and_o soul_n yea_o the_o dumb_a creature_n rom._n 8._o 23._o be_v say_v to_o groan_v and_o sigh_v wait_v for_o the_o adoption_n even_o the_o redemption_n of_o our_o body_n much_o more_o than_o do_v the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n desire_v the_o same_o and_o thus_o far_o we_o consent_v the_o dissent_n or_o difference_n they_o hold_v and_o teach_v that_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n as_o the_o virgin_n marie_n peter_n paul_n etc._n etc._n do_v make_v intercession_n to_o god_n for_o particular_a man_n according_a to_o their_o several_a want_n and_o that_o have_v receive_v particular_a man_n prayer_n they_o present_v they_o unto_o god_n but_o this_o doctrine_n we_o flat_o renounce_v upon_o these_o ground_n and_o reason_n i._o isa._n 63.16_o the_o church_n say_v to_o god_n doubtless_o thou_o be_v our_o father_n though_o abraham_n be_v ignorant_a of_o we_o and_o israel_n know_v we_o not_o now_o if_o abraham_n know_v not_o his_o posterity_n neither_o marie_n nor_o peter_n nor_o any_o other_o of_o the_o saint_n depart_v know_v we_o and_o our_o estate_n and_o consequent_o they_o can_v make_v any_o particular_a intercession_n for_o us._n if_o they_o say_v that_o abraham_n &_o jacob_n be_v then_o in_o limbo_n which_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o hell_n what_o joy_n can_v lazarus_n have_v in_o abraham_n bosom_n luk._n 16.25_o &_o with_o what_o comfort_n can_v jacob_n say_v on_o his_o death_n bed_n o_o lord_n i_o have_v wait_v for_o thy_o salvation_n gen._n 46.18_o ii_o reason_n 2._o king_n 22.20_o huldah_n the_o prophetess_n tell_v josias_n he_o
be_v express_v in_o the_o moral_a law_n the_o moral_a law_n be_v that_o part_n of_o god_n word_n which_o command_v perfect_a obedience_n unto_o man_n as_o well_o ●n_o his_o nature_n as_o in_o his_o action_n and_o forbid_v the_o contrary_a rom._n 10.5_o moses_n thus_o describe_v the_o righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o the_o law_n that_o the_o man_n which_o do_v these_o thing_n shall_v live_v thereby_o 1._o tim._n 1.5_o the_o end_n of_o the_o commandment_n be_v love_n out_o of_o a_o pure_a heart_n and_o of_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o faith_n unfeigned_a luk._n 16.27_o thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o strength_n rom._n 7._o we_o know_v that_o the_o law_n be_v spiritual_a the_o law_n have_v two_o part_n the_o edict_n command_v obedience_n and_o the_o condition_n bind_v to_o obedience_n the_o condition_n be_v eternal_a life_n to_o such_o as_o fulfil_v the_o law_n but_o to_o transgressor_n everlasting_a death_n the_o decalogue_n or_o ten_o commandment_n be_v a_o abridgement_n of_o the_o whole_a law_n and_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n exod._n 34.27_o and_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o moses_n write_v thou_o these_o word_n for_o after_o the_o tenor_n of_o these_o word_n i_o have_v make_v a_o covenant_n with_o thou_o and_o with_o israel_n and_o be_v there_o with_o the_o lord_n forty_o day_n and_o forty_o night_n and_o do_v neither_o eat_v bread_n nor_o drink_v water_n and_o he_o write_v in_o the_o table_n the_o word_n of_o the_o covenant_n even_o the_o ten_o commandment_n 1._o king_n 8.9_o nothing_o be_v in_o the_o ark_n save_o the_o two_o table_n of_o stone_n which_o moses_n have_v put_v there_o at_o horeb_n where_o the_o lord_n make_v a_o covenant_n with_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n when_o he_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n matth._n 22.40_o on_o these_o two_o commandment_n hang_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o the_o prophet_n the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o the_o decalogue_n must_v be_v according_a to_o these_o rule_n i._o in_o the_o negative_a the_o affirmative_a must_v be_v understand_v and_o in_o the_o affirmative_a the_o negative_a ii_o the_o negative_a bind_v at_o all_o time_n and_o to_o all_o time_n and_o the_o affirmative_a bind_v at_o all_o time_n but_o not_o to_o all_o time_n and_o therefore_o negative_n be_v of_o more_o force_n iii_o under_o one_o vice_n express_o forbid_v be_v comprehend_v all_o of_o that_o kind_n yea_o the_o least_o cause_n occasion_n or_o entisement_n thereto_o be_v as_o well_o forbid_v as_o that_o 1._o joh._n 3.15_o whosoever_o hate_v his_o brother_n be_v a_o manslayer_n matth._n 5.21_o to_o the_o end_n evil_a thought_n be_v condemn_v as_o well_o as_o evil_a action_n iv._o the_o small_a sin_n be_v entitle_v with_o the_o same_o name_n that_o that_o sin_n be_v which_o be_v express_o forbid_v in_o that_o commandment_n to_o which_o they_o appertain_v as_o in_o the_o former_a place_n hatred_n be_v name_v murder_n and_o to_o look_v after_o a_o woman_n with_o a_o lust_a eye_n be_v adultery_n v._o we_o must_v understand_v every_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n so_o as_o that_o we_o annex_v this_o condition_n unless_o god_n command_v the_o contrary_n for_o god_n be_v a_o absolute_a lord_n and_o so_o above_o the_o law_n may_v command_v that_o which_o his_o law_n forbid_v so_o he_o command_v isaac_n to_o be_v offer_v the_o egyptian_n to_o be_v spoil_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n to_o be_v erect_v which_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n the_o decalogue_n be_v describe_v in_o two_o table_n the_o sum_n of_o the_o first_o table_n be_v that_o we_o love_v god_n with_o our_o mind_n memory_n affection_n and_o all_o our_o strength_n matth._n 22._o 37._o this_o be_v the_o first_o to_o wit_n in_o nature_n and_o order_n and_o great_a commandment_n namely_o in_o excellency_n and_o dignity_n chap._n 20._o of_o the_o first_o commandment_n the_o first_o table_n have_v four_o commandment_n the_o first_o teach_v we_o to_o have_v and_o choose_v the_o true_a god_n for_o our_o god_n the_o word_n be_v these_o i_o be_o jehovah_n thy_o god_n which_o bring_v thou_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n and_o out_o of_o the_o house_n of_o bondage_n thou_o shall_v have_v none_o other_o god_n but_o i_o the_o resolution_n i_o be_o if_o any_o man_n rather_o judge_v that_o these_o word_n be_v a_o preface_n to_o all_o the_o commandment_n than_o a_o part_n of_o the_o first_o i_o hinder_v he_o not_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v like_a that_o they_o be_v a_o persuasion_n to_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o first_o commandment_n &_o that_o they_o be_v set_v before_o it_o to_o make_v way_n unto_o it_o as_o be_v more_o hard_a to_o be_v receive_v than_o the_o rest_n and_o this_o may_v appear_v in_o that_o the_o three_o commandment_n next_o follow_v have_v their_o several_a reason_n jehovah_n this_o word_n signify_v three_o thing_n i._o he_o who_o of_o himself_o and_o in_o himself_o be_v from_o all_o eternity_n revel_v 1.8_o who_o be_v who_o be_v and_o who_o be_v to_o come_v ii_o he_o which_o give_v be_v to_o all_o thing_n when_o they_o be_v not_o partly_o by_o create_v partly_o by_o preserve_v they_o iii_o he_o which_o mighty_o cause_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v shall_v both_o be_v make_v and_o continue_v exod._n 6.1_o rom._n 4._o 17._o here_o begin_v the_o first_o reason_n of_o the_o first_o commandment_n take_v from_o the_o name_n of_o god_n it_o be_v thus_o frame_v he_o that_o be_v jehovah_n must_v alone_o be_v thy_o god_n but_o i_o be_o jehovah_n therefore_o i_o alone_o must_v be_v thy_o god_n this_o proposition_n be_v want_v the_o assumption_n be_v in_o these_o word_n i_o be_o jehovah_n the_o conclusion_n be_v the_o commandment_n thy_o god_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n jer._n 32.33_o whereby_o the_o lord_n promise_v to_o his_o people_n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n yea_o these_o word_n be_v as_o a_o second_o reason_n of_o the_o commandment_n draw_v from_o the_o equality_n of_o that_o relation_n which_o be_v between_o god_n and_o his_o people_n if_o i_o be_v thy_o god_n thou_o again_o must_v be_v my_o people_n and_o take_v i_o alone_o for_o thy_o god_n but_o i_o be_o thy_o god_n therefore_o thou_o must_v be_v my_o people_n and_o take_v i_o alone_o for_o thy_o god_n the_o assumption_n or_o second_o part_n of_o this_o reason_n be_v confirm_v by_o a_o argument_n take_v from_o god_n effect_n when_o he_o deliver_v his_o people_n out_o of_o egypt_n as_o it_o be_v from_o the_o servitude_n of_o a_o most_o tyrannous_a master_n this_o delivery_n be_v not_o appropriate_v only_o to_o the_o israelite_n but_o in_o some_o sort_n to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o all_o age_n in_o that_o it_o be_v a_o typ●●f_a a_o more_o surpass_a delivery_n from_o that_o fearful_a kingdom_n of_o darkness_n 1._o cor._n 10.1,2_o i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o ignorant_a brethren_n that_o all_o our_o father_n be_v under_o the_o cloud_n and_o all_o pass_v through_o the_o red_a sea_n and_o be_v all_o baptize_v unto_o moses_n in_o the_o cloud_n and_o in_o the_o sea_n coloss._n 1.13_o who_o have_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n and_o translate_v we_o into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o dear_a son_n other_o god_n or_o strange_a god_n they_o be_v so_o call_v not_o that_o they_o by_o nature_n be_v such_o or_o can_v be_v but_o because_o the_o corrupt_a and_o more_o than_o devilish_a heart_n of_o carnal_a man_n esteem_v so_o of_o they_o phil._n 3.19_o who_o god_n be_v their_o belly_n 1._o cor._n 4.4_o who_o mind_n the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v bewitch_v before_o my_o face_n that_o be_v figurative_o in_o my_o sight_n or_o presence_n to_o who_o the_o secret_a imagination_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v know_v and_o this_o be_v the_o three_o reason_n of_o the_o first_o commandment_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o thou_o in_o my_o presence_n reject_v i_o it_o be_v a_o heinous_a offence_n see_v therefore_o thou_o do_v it_o not_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n reason_v the_o lord_n gen._n 17.1_o i_o be_o god_n almighty_a therefore_o walk_v upright_o the_o affirmative_a part_n make_v choice_n of_o jehovah_n to_o be_v thy_o god_n the_o duty_n here_o command_v be_v these_o i._o to_o acknowledge_v god_n that_o be_v to_o know_v and_o confess_v he_o to_o be_v such_o a_o god_n as_o he_o have_v reveal_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o his_o word_n and_o creature_n col._n 1.10_o increase_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n jerem._n 24._o 7._o and_o i_o will_v give_v they_o a_o heart_n to_o know_v i_o that_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n and_o i_o will_v be_v their_o god_n for_o they_o